The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Dynamiter, by Robert Louis Stevenson (#32 in our series by Robert Louis Stevenson) Copyright laws are changing all over the world. Be sure to check the copyright laws for your country before downloading or redistributing this or any other Project Gutenberg eBook. This header should be the first thing seen when viewing this Project Gutenberg file. Please do not remove it. Do not change or edit the header without written permission. Please read the "legal small print," and other information about the eBook and Project Gutenberg at the bottom of this file. Included is important information about your specific rights and restrictions in how the file may be used. You can also find out about how to make a donation to Project Gutenberg, and how to get involved. **Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts** **eBooks Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971** *****These eBooks Were Prepared By Thousands of Volunteers!***** Title: The Dynamiter Author: Robert Louis Stevenson and Fanny van de Grift Stevenson Release Date: September, 1996 [EBook #647] [This file was first posted on September 13, 1996] [Most recently updated: September 2, 2002] Edition: 10 Language: English Character set encoding: ASCII
Transcribed from the 1903 Longmans, Green And Co. edition by David Price,
email [email protected]
THE DYNAMITER
TO MESSRS. COLE AND COX, POLICE OFFICERS
Gentlemen, - In the volume now in your hands, the authors have touched
upon that ugly devil of crime, with which it is your glory to have contended.
It were a waste of ink to do so in a serious spirit. Let us dedicate
our horror to acts of a more mingled strain, where crime preserves some
features of nobility, and where reason and humanity can still relish
the temptation. Horror, in this case, is due to Mr. Parnell: he
sits before posterity silent, Mr. Forster’s appeal echoing down
the ages. Horror is due to ourselves, in that we have so long
coquetted with political crime; not seriously weighing, not acutely
following it from cause to consequence; but with a generous, unfounded
heat of sentiment, like the schoolboy with the penny tale, applauding
what was specious. When it touched ourselves (truly in a vile
shape), we proved false to the imaginations; discovered, in a clap,
that crime was no less cruel and no less ugly under sounding names;
and recoiled from our false deities.
But seriousness comes most in place when we are to speak of our defenders.
Whoever be in the right in this great and confused war of politics;
whatever elements of greed, whatever traits of the bully, dishonour
both parties in this inhuman contest; - your side, your part, is at
least pure of doubt. Yours is the side of the child, of the breeding
woman, of individual pity and public trust. If our society were
the mere kingdom of the devil (as indeed it wears some of his colours)
it yet embraces many precious elements and many innocent persons whom
it is a glory to defend. Courage and devotion, so common in the
ranks of the police, so little recognised, so meagrely rewarded, have
at length found their commemoration in an historical act. History,
which will represent Mr. Parnell sitting silent under the appeal of
Mr. Forster, and Gordon setting forth upon his tragic enterprise, will
not forget Mr. Cole carrying the dynamite in his defenceless hands,
nor Mr. Cox coming coolly to his aid.
Robert Louis Stevenson
Fanny Van De Grift Stevenson
A NOTE FOR THE READER
It is within the bounds of possibility that you may take up this volume,
and yet be unacquainted with its predecessor: the first series of NEW
ARABIAN NIGHTS. The loss is yours - and mine; or to be more exact,
my publishers’. But if you are thus unlucky, the least I
can do is to pass you a hint. When you shall find a reference
in the following pages to one Theophilus Godall of the Bohemian Cigar
Divan in Rupert Street, Soho, you must be prepared to recognise, under
his features, no less a person than Prince Florizel of Bohemia, formerly
one of the magnates of Europe, now dethroned, exiled, impoverished,
and embarked in the tobacco trade.
R. L. S.
NEW ARABIAN NIGHTS
A SECOND SERIES
THE DYNAMITER
PROLOGUE OF THE CIGAR DIVAN
In the city of encounters, the Bagdad of the West, and, to be more
precise, on the broad northern pavement of Leicester Square, two young
men of five- or six-and-twenty met after years of separation.
The first, who was of a very smooth address and clothed in the best
fashion, hesitated to recognise the pinched and shabby air of his companion.
‘What!’ he cried, ‘Paul Somerset!’
‘I am indeed Paul Somerset,’ returned the other, ‘or
what remains of him after a well-deserved experience of poverty and
law. But in you, Challoner, I can perceive no change; and time
may be said, without hyperbole, to write no wrinkle on your azure brow.’
‘All,’ replied Challoner, ‘is not gold that glitters.
But we are here in an ill posture for confidences, and interrupt the
movement of these ladies. Let us, if you please, find a more private
corner.’
‘If you will allow me to guide you,’ replied Somerset, ‘I
will offer you the best cigar in London.’
And taking the arm of his companion, he led him in silence and at a
brisk pace to the door of a quiet establishment in Rupert Street, Soho.
The entrance was adorned with one of those gigantic Highlanders of wood
which have almost risen to the standing of antiquities; and across the
window-glass, which sheltered the usual display of pipes, tobacco, and
cigars, there ran the gilded legend: ‘Bohemian Cigar Divan, by
T. Godall.’ The interior of the shop was small, but commodious
and ornate; the salesman grave, smiling, and urbane; and the two young
men, each puffing a select regalia, had soon taken their places on a
sofa of mouse-coloured plush and proceeded to exchange their stories.
‘I am now,’ said Somerset, ‘a barrister; but Providence
and the attorneys have hitherto denied me the opportunity to shine.
A select society at the Cheshire Cheese engaged my evenings; my afternoons,
as Mr. Godall could testify, have been generally passed in this divan;
and my mornings, I have taken the precaution to abbreviate by not rising
before twelve. At this rate, my little patrimony was very rapidly,
and I am proud to remember, most agreeably expended. Since then
a gentleman, who has really nothing else to recommend him beyond the
fact of being my maternal uncle, deals me the small sum of ten shillings
a week; and if you behold me once more revisiting the glimpses of the
street lamps in my favourite quarter, you will readily divine that I
have come into a fortune.’
‘I should not have supposed so,’ replied Challoner.
‘But doubtless I met you on the way to your tailors.’
‘It is a visit that I purpose to delay,’ returned Somerset,
with a smile. ‘My fortune has definite limits. It
consists, or rather this morning it consisted, of one hundred pounds.’
‘That is certainly odd,’ said Challoner; ‘yes, certainly
the coincidence is strange. I am myself reduced to the same margin.’
‘You!’ cried Somerset. ‘And yet Solomon in all
his glory - ’
‘Such is the fact. I am, dear boy, on my last legs,’
said Challoner. ‘Besides the clothes in which you see me,
I have scarcely a decent trouser in my wardrobe; and if I knew how,
I would this instant set about some sort of work or commerce.
With a hundred pounds for capital, a man should push his way.’
‘It may be,’ returned Somerset; ‘but what to do with
mine is more than I can fancy. Mr. Godall,’ he added, addressing
the salesman, ‘you are a man who knows the world: what can a young
fellow of reasonable education do with a hundred pounds?’
‘It depends,’ replied the salesman, withdrawing his cheroot.
‘The power of money is an article of faith in which I profess
myself a sceptic. A hundred pounds will with difficulty support
you for a year; with somewhat more difficulty you may spend it in a
night; and without any difficulty at all you may lose it in five minutes
on the Stock Exchange. If you are of that stamp of man that rises,
a penny would be as useful; if you belong to those that fall, a penny
would be no more useless. When I was myself thrown unexpectedly
upon the world, it was my fortune to possess an art: I knew a good cigar.
Do you know nothing, Mr. Somerset?’
‘Not even law,’ was the reply.
‘The answer is worthy of a sage,’ returned Mr. Godall.
‘And you, sir,’ he continued, turning to Challoner, ‘as
the friend of Mr. Somerset, may I be allowed to address you the same
question?’
‘Well,’ replied Challoner, ‘I play a fair hand at
whist.’
‘How many persons are there in London,’ returned the salesman,
‘who have two-and-thirty teeth? Believe me, young gentleman,
there are more still who play a fair hand at whist. Whist, sir,
is wide as the world; ’tis an accomplishment like breathing.
I once knew a youth who announced that he was studying to be Chancellor
of England; the design was certainly ambitious; but I find it less excessive
than that of the man who aspires to make a livelihood by whist.’
‘Dear me,’ said Challoner, ‘I am afraid I shall have
to fall to be a working man.’
‘Fall to be a working man?’ echoed Mr. Godall. ‘Suppose
a rural dean to be unfrocked, does he fall to be a major? suppose a
captain were cashiered, would he fall to be a puisne judge? The
ignorance of your middle class surprises me. Outside itself, it
thinks the world to lie quite ignorant and equal, sunk in a common degradation;
but to the eye of the observer, all ranks are seen to stand in ordered
hierarchies, and each adorned with its particular aptitudes and knowledge.
By the defects of your education you are more disqualified to be a working
man than to be the ruler of an empire. The gulf, sir, is below;
and the true learned arts - those which alone are safe from the competition
of insurgent laymen - are those which give his title to the artisan.’
‘This is a very pompous fellow,’ said Challoner, in the
ear of his companion.
‘He is immense,’ said Somerset.
Just then the door of the divan was opened, and a third young fellow
made his appearance, and rather bashfully requested some tobacco.
He was younger than the others; and, in a somewhat meaningless and altogether
English way, he was a handsome lad. When he had been served, and
had lighted his pipe and taken his place upon the sofa, he recalled
himself to Challoner by the name of Desborough.
‘Desborough, to be sure,’ cried Challoner. ‘Well,
Desborough, and what do you do?’
‘The fact is,’ said Desborough, ‘that I am doing nothing.’
‘A private fortune possibly?’ inquired the other.
‘Well, no,’ replied Desborough, rather sulkily. ‘The
fact is that I am waiting for something to turn up.’
‘All in the same boat!’ cried Somerset. ‘And
have you, too, one hundred pounds?’
‘Worse luck,’ said Mr. Desborough.
‘This is a very pathetic sight, Mr. Godall,’ said Somerset:
‘Three futiles.’
‘A character of this crowded age,’ returned the salesman.
‘Sir,’ said Somerset, ‘I deny that the age is crowded;
I will admit one fact, and one fact only: that I am futile, that he
is futile, and that we are all three as futile as the devil. What
am I? I have smattered law, smattered letters, smattered geography,
smattered mathematics; I have even a working knowledge of judicial astrology;
and here I stand, all London roaring by at the street’s end, as
impotent as any baby. I have a prodigious contempt for my maternal
uncle; but without him, it is idle to deny it, I should simply resolve
into my elements like an unstable mixture. I begin to perceive
that it is necessary to know some one thing to the bottom - were it
only literature. And yet, sir, the man of the world is a great
feature of this age; he is possessed of an extraordinary mass and variety
of knowledge; he is everywhere at home; he has seen life in all its
phases; and it is impossible but that this great habit of existence
should bear fruit. I count myself a man of the world, accomplished,
cap-à-pie. So do you, Challoner. And you,
Mr. Desborough?’
‘Oh yes,’ returned the young man.
‘Well then, Mr. Godall, here we stand, three men of the world,
without a trade to cover us, but planted at the strategic centre of
the universe (for so you will allow me to call Rupert Street), in the
midst of the chief mass of people, and within ear-shot of the most continuous
chink of money on the surface of the globe. Sir, as civilised
men, what do we do? I will show you. You take in a paper?’
‘I take,’ said Mr. Godall solemnly, ‘the best paper
in the world, the Standard.’
‘Good,’ resumed Somerset. ‘I now hold it in
my hand, the voice of the world, a telephone repeating all men’s
wants. I open it, and where my eye first falls - well, no, not
Morrison’s Pills - but here, sure enough, and but a little above,
I find the joint that I was seeking; here is the weak spot in the armour
of society. Here is a want, a plaint, an offer of substantial
gratitude: “Two hundred Pounds Reward. - The above reward
will be paid to any person giving information as to the identity and
whereabouts of a man observed yesterday in the neighbourhood of the
Green Park. He was over six feet in height, with shoulders disproportionately
broad, close shaved, with black moustaches, and wearing a sealskin great-coat.”
There, gentlemen, our fortune, if not made, is founded.’
‘Do you then propose, dear boy, that we should turn detectives?’
inquired Challoner.
‘Do I propose it? No, sir,’ cried Somerset.
‘It is reason, destiny, the plain face of the world, that commands
and imposes it. Here all our merits tell; our manners, habit of
the world, powers of conversation, vast stores of unconnected knowledge,
all that we are and have builds up the character of the complete detective.
It is, in short, the only profession for a gentleman.’
‘The proposition is perhaps excessive,’ replied Challoner;
‘for hitherto I own I have regarded it as of all dirty, sneaking,
and ungentlemanly trades, the least and lowest.’
‘To defend society?’ asked Somerset; ‘to stake one’s
life for others? to deracinate occult and powerful evil? I appeal
to Mr. Godall. He, at least, as a philosophic looker-on at life,
will spit upon such philistine opinions. He knows that the policeman,
as he is called upon continually to face greater odds, and that both
worse equipped and for a better cause, is in form and essence a more
noble hero than the soldier. Do you, by any chance, deceive yourself
into supposing that a general would either ask or expect, from the best
army ever marshalled, and on the most momentous battle-field, the conduct
of a common constable at Peckham Rye?’ {1}
‘I did not understand we were to join the force,’ said Challoner.
‘Nor shall we. These are the hands; but here - here, sir,
is the head,’ cried Somerset. ‘Enough; it is decreed.
We shall hunt down this miscreant in the sealskin coat.’
‘Suppose that we agreed,’ retorted Challoner, ‘you
have no plan, no knowledge; you know not where to seek for a beginning.’
‘Challoner!’ cried Somerset, ‘is it possible that
you hold the doctrine of Free Will? And are you devoid of any
tincture of philosophy, that you should harp on such exploded fallacies?
Chance, the blind Madonna of the Pagan, rules this terrestrial bustle;
and in Chance I place my sole reliance. Chance has brought us
three together; when we next separate and go forth our several ways,
Chance will continually drag before our careless eyes a thousand eloquent
clues, not to this mystery only, but to the countless mysteries by which
we live surrounded. Then comes the part of the man of the world,
of the detective born and bred. This clue, which the whole town
beholds without comprehension, swift as a cat, he leaps upon it, makes
it his, follows it with craft and passion, and from one trifling circumstance
divines a world.’
‘Just so,’ said Challoner; ‘and I am delighted that
you should recognise these virtues in yourself. But in the meanwhile,
dear boy, I own myself incapable of joining. I was neither born
nor bred as a detective, but as a placable and very thirsty gentleman;
and, for my part, I begin to weary for a drink. As for clues and
adventures, the only adventure that is ever likely to occur to me will
be an adventure with a bailiff.’
‘Now there is the fallacy,’ cried Somerset. ‘There
I catch the secret of your futility in life. The world teems and
bubbles with adventure; it besieges you along the street: hands waving
out of windows, swindlers coming up and swearing they knew you when
you were abroad, affable and doubtful people of all sorts and conditions
begging and truckling for your notice. But not you: you turn away,
you walk your seedy mill round, you must go the dullest way. Now
here, I beg of you, the next adventure that offers itself, embrace it
in with both your arms; whatever it looks, grimy or romantic, grasp
it. I will do the like; the devil is in it, but at least we shall
have fun; and each in turn we shall narrate the story of our fortunes
to my philosophic friend of the divan, the great Godall, now hearing
me with inward joy. Come, is it a bargain? Will you, indeed,
both promise to welcome every chance that offers, to plunge boldly into
every opening, and, keeping the eye wary and the head composed, to study
and piece together all that happens? Come, promise: let me open
to you the doors of the great profession of intrigue.’
‘It is not much in my way,’ said Challoner, ‘but,
since you make a point of it, amen.’
‘I don’t mind promising,’ said Desborough, ‘but
nothing will happen to me.’
‘O faithless ones!’ cried Somerset. ‘But at
least I have your promises; and Godall, I perceive, is transported with
delight.’
‘I promise myself at least much pleasure from your various narratives,’
said the salesman, with the customary calm polish of his manner.
‘And now, gentlemen,’ concluded Somerset, ‘let us
separate. I hasten to put myself in fortune’s way.
Hark how, in this quiet corner, London roars like the noise of battle;
four million destinies are here concentred; and in the strong panoply
of one hundred pounds, payable to the bearer, I am about to plunge into
that web.’
CHALLONER’S ADVENTURE: THE SQUIRE OF DAMES
Mr. Edward Challoner had set up lodgings in the suburb of Putney,
where he enjoyed a parlour and bedroom and the sincere esteem of the
people of the house. To this remote home he found himself, at
a very early hour in the morning of the next day, condemned to set forth
on foot. He was a young man of a portly habit; no lover of the
exercises of the body; bland, sedentary, patient of delay, a prop of
omnibuses. In happier days he would have chartered a cab; but
these luxuries were now denied him; and with what courage he could muster
he addressed himself to walk.
It was then the height of the season and the summer; the weather was
serene and cloudless; and as he paced under the blinded houses and along
the vacant streets, the chill of the dawn had fled, and some of the
warmth and all the brightness of the July day already shone upon the
city. He walked at first in a profound abstraction, bitterly reviewing
and repenting his performances at whist; but as he advanced into the
labyrinth of the south-west, his ear was gradually mastered by the silence.
Street after street looked down upon his solitary figure, house after
house echoed upon his passage with a ghostly jar, shop after shop displayed
its shuttered front and its commercial legend; and meanwhile he steered
his course, under day’s effulgent dome and through this encampment
of diurnal sleepers, lonely as a ship.
‘Here,’ he reflected, ‘if I were like my scatter-brained
companion, here were indeed the scene where I might look for an adventure.
Here, in broad day, the streets are secret as in the blackest night
of January, and in the midst of some four million sleepers, solitary
as the woods of Yucatan. If I but raise my voice I could summon
up the number of an army, and yet the grave is not more silent than
this city of sleep.’
He was still following these quaint and serious musings when he came
into a street of more mingled ingredients than was common in the quarter.
Here, on the one hand, framed in walls and the green tops of trees,
were several of those discreet, bijou residences on which propriety
is apt to look askance. Here, too, were many of the brick-fronted
barracks of the poor; a plaster cow, perhaps, serving as ensign to a
dairy, or a ticket announcing the business of the mangler. Before
one such house, that stood a little separate among walled gardens, a
cat was playing with a straw, and Challoner paused a moment, looking
on this sleek and solitary creature, who seemed an emblem of the neighbouring
peace. With the cessation of the sound of his own steps the silence
fell dead; the house stood smokeless: the blinds down, the whole machinery
of life arrested; and it seemed to Challoner that he should hear the
breathing of the sleepers.
As he so stood, he was startled by a dull and jarring detonation from
within. This was followed by a monstrous hissing and simmering
as from a kettle of the bigness of St. Paul’s; and at the same
time from every chink of door and window spirted an ill-smelling vapour.
The cat disappeared with a cry. Within the lodging-house feet
pounded on the stairs; the door flew back, emitting clouds of smoke;
and two men and an elegantly dressed young lady tumbled forth into the
street and fled without a word. The hissing had already ceased,
the smoke was melting in the air, the whole event had come and gone
as in a dream, and still Challoner was rooted to the spot. At
last his reason and his fear awoke together, and with the most unwonted
energy he fell to running.
Little by little this first dash relaxed, and presently he had resumed
his sober gait and begun to piece together, out of the confused report
of his senses, some theory of the occurrence. But the occasion
of the sounds and stench that had so suddenly assailed him, and the
strange conjunction of fugitives whom he had seen to issue from the
house, were mysteries beyond his plummet. With an obscure awe
he considered them in his mind, continuing, meanwhile, to thread the
web of streets, and once more alone in morning sunshine.
In his first retreat he had entirely wandered; and now, steering vaguely
west, it was his luck to light upon an unpretending street, which presently
widened so as to admit a strip of gardens in the midst. Here was
quite a stir of birds; even at that hour, the shadow of the leaves was
grateful; instead of the burnt atmosphere of cities, there was something
brisk and rural in the air; and Challoner paced forward, his eyes upon
the pavement and his mind running upon distant scenes, till he was recalled,
upon a sudden, by a wall that blocked his further progress. This
street, whose name I have forgotten, is no thoroughfare.
He was not the first who had wandered there that morning; for as he
raised his eyes with an agreeable deliberation, they alighted on the
figure of a girl, in whom he was struck to recognise the third of the
incongruous fugitives. She had run there, seemingly, blindfold;
the wall had checked her career: and being entirely wearied, she had
sunk upon the ground beside the garden railings, soiling her dress among
the summer dust. Each saw the other in the same instant of time;
and she, with one wild look, sprang to her feet and began to hurry from
the scene.
Challoner was doubly startled to meet once more the heroine of his adventure,
and to observe the fear with which she shunned him. Pity and alarm,
in nearly equal forces, contested the possession of his mind; and yet,
in spite of both, he saw himself condemned to follow in the lady’s
wake. He did so gingerly, as fearing to increase her terrors;
but, tread as lightly as he might, his footfalls eloquently echoed in
the empty street. Their sound appeared to strike in her some strong
emotion; for scarce had he begun to follow ere she paused. A second
time she addressed herself to flight; and a second time she paused.
Then she turned about, and with doubtful steps and the most attractive
appearance of timidity, drew near to the young man. He on his
side continued to advance with similar signals of distress and bashfulness.
At length, when they were but some steps apart, he saw her eyes brim
over, and she reached out both her hands in eloquent appeal.
‘Are you an English gentleman?’ she cried.
The unhappy Challoner regarded her with consternation. He was
the spirit of fine courtesy, and would have blushed to fail in his devoirs
to any lady; but, in the other scale, he was a man averse from amorous
adventures. He looked east and west; but the houses that looked
down upon this interview remained inexorably shut; and he saw himself,
though in the full glare of the day’s eye, cut off from any human
intervention. His looks returned at last upon the suppliant.
He remarked with irritation that she was charming both in face and figure,
elegantly dressed and gloved; a lady undeniable; the picture of distress
and innocence; weeping and lost in the city of diurnal sleep.
‘Madam,’ he said, ‘I protest you have no cause to
fear intrusion; and if I have appeared to follow you, the fault is in
this street, which has deceived us both.’ An unmistakable
relief appeared upon the lady’s face. ‘I might have
guessed it!’ she exclaimed. ‘Thank you a thousand
times! But at this hour, in this appalling silence, and among
all these staring windows, I am lost in terrors - oh, lost in them!’
she cried, her face blanching at the words. ‘I beg you to
lend me your arm,’ she added with the loveliest, suppliant inflection.
‘I dare not go alone; my nerve is gone - I had a shock, oh, what
a shock! I beg of you to be my escort.’
‘My dear madam,’ responded Challoner heavily, ‘my
arm is at your service.’
‘She took it and clung to it for a moment, struggling with her
sobs; and the next, with feverish hurry, began to lead him in the direction
of the city. One thing was plain, among so much that was obscure:
it was plain her fears were genuine. Still, as she went, she spied
around as if for dangers; and now she would shiver like a person in
a chill, and now clutch his arm in hers. To Challoner her terror
was at once repugnant and infectious; it gained and mastered, while
it still offended him; and he wailed in spirit and longed for release.
‘Madam,’ he said at last, ‘I am, of course, charmed
to be of use to any lady; but I confess I was bound in a direction opposite
to that you follow, and a word of explanation - ’
‘Hush!’ she sobbed, ‘not here - not here!’
The blood of Challoner ran cold. He might have thought the lady
mad; but his memory was charged with more perilous stuff; and in view
of the detonation, the smoke and the flight of the ill-assorted trio,
his mind was lost among mysteries. So they continued to thread
the maze of streets in silence, with the speed of a guilty flight, and
both thrilling with incommunicable terrors. In time, however,
and above all by their quick pace of walking, the pair began to rise
to firmer spirits; the lady ceased to peer about the corners; and Challoner,
emboldened by the resonant tread and distant figure of a constable,
returned to the charge with more of spirit and directness.
‘I thought,’ said he, in the tone of conversation, ‘that
I had indistinctly perceived you leaving a villa in the company of two
gentlemen.’
‘Oh!’ she said, ‘you need not fear to wound me by
the truth. You saw me flee from a common lodging-house, and my
companions were not gentlemen. In such a case, the best of compliments
is to be frank.’
‘I thought,’ resumed Challoner, encouraged as much as he
was surprised by the spirit of her reply, ‘to have perceived,
besides, a certain odour. A noise, too - I do not know to what
I should compare it - ’
‘Silence!’ she cried. ‘You do not know the danger
you invoke. Wait, only wait; and as soon as we have left those
streets, and got beyond the reach of listeners, all shall be explained.
Meanwhile, avoid the topic. What a sight is this sleeping city!’
she exclaimed; and then, with a most thrilling voice, ‘“Dear
God,” she quoted, “the very houses seem asleep, and all
that mighty heart is lying still.”’
‘I perceive, madam,’ said he, ‘you are a reader.’
‘I am more than that,’ she answered, with a sigh.
‘I am a girl condemned to thoughts beyond her age; and so untoward
is my fate, that this walk upon the arm of a stranger is like an interlude
of peace.’
They had come by this time to the neighbourhood of the Victoria Station
and here, at a street corner, the young lady paused, withdrew her arm
from Challoner’s, and looked up and down as though in pain or
indecision. Then, with a lovely change of countenance, and laying
her gloved hand upon his arm -
‘What you already think of me,’ she said, ‘I tremble
to conceive; yet I must here condemn myself still further. Here
I must leave you, and here I beseech you to wait for my return.
Do not attempt to follow me or spy upon my actions. Suspend yet
awhile your judgment of a girl as innocent as your own sister; and do
not, above all, desert me. Stranger as you are, I have none else
to look to. You see me in sorrow and great fear; you are a gentleman,
courteous and kind: and when I beg for a few minutes’ patience,
I make sure beforehand you will not deny me.’
Challoner grudgingly promised; and the young lady, with a grateful eye-shot,
vanished round the corner. But the force of her appeal had been
a little blunted; for the young man was not only destitute of sisters,
but of any female relative nearer than a great-aunt in Wales.
Now he was alone, besides, the spell that he had hitherto obeyed began
to weaken; he considered his behaviour with a sneer; and plucking up
the spirit of revolt, he started in pursuit. The reader, if he
has ever plied the fascinating trade of the noctambulist, will not be
unaware that, in the neighbourhood of the great railway centres, certain
early taverns inaugurate the business of the day. It was into
one of these that Challoner, coming round the corner of the block, beheld
his charming companion disappear. To say he was surprised were
inexact, for he had long since left that sentiment behind him.
Acute disgust and disappointment seized upon his soul; and with silent
oaths, he damned this commonplace enchantress. She had scarce
been gone a second, ere the swing-doors reopened, and she appeared again
in company with a young man of mean and slouching attire. For
some five or six exchanges they conversed together with an animated
air; then the fellow shouldered again into the tap; and the young lady,
with something swifter than a walk, retraced her steps towards Challoner.
He saw her coming, a miracle of grace; her ankle, as she hurried, flashing
from her dress; her movements eloquent of speed and youth; and though
he still entertained some thoughts of flight, they grew miserably fainter
as the distance lessened. Against mere beauty he was proof: it
was her unmistakable gentility that now robbed him of the courage of
his cowardice. With a proved adventuress he had acted strictly
on his right; with one who, in spite of all, he could not quite deny
to be a lady, he found himself disarmed. At the very corner from
whence he had spied upon her interview, she came upon him, still transfixed,
and - ‘Ah!’ she cried, with a bright flush of colour.
‘Ah! Ungenerous!’
The sharpness of the attack somewhat restored the Squire of Dames to
the possession of himself.
‘Madam,’ he returned, with a fair show of stoutness, ‘I
do not think that hitherto you can complain of any lack of generosity;
I have suffered myself to be led over a considerable portion of the
metropolis; and if I now request you to discharge me of my office of
protector, you have friends at hand who will be glad of the succession.’
She stood a moment dumb.
‘It is well,’ she said. ‘Go! go, and may God
help me! You have seen me - me, an innocent girl! fleeing from
a dire catastrophe and haunted by sinister men; and neither pity, curiosity,
nor honour move you to await my explanation or to help in my distress.
Go!’ she repeated. ‘I am lost indeed.’
And with a passionate gesture she turned and fled along the street.
Challoner observed her retreat and disappear, an almost intolerable
sense of guilt contending with the profound sense that he was being
gulled. She was no sooner gone than the first of these feelings
took the upper hand; he felt, if he had done her less than justice,
that his conduct was a perfect model of the ungracious; the cultured
tone of her voice, her choice of language, and the elegant decorum of
her movements, cried out aloud against a harsh construction; and between
penitence and curiosity he began slowly to follow in her wake.
At the corner he had her once more full in view. Her speed was
failing like a stricken bird’s. Even as he looked, she threw
her arm out gropingly, and fell and leaned against the wall. At
the spectacle, Challoner’s fortitude gave way. In a few
strides he overtook her and, for the first time removing his hat, assured
her in the most moving terms of his entire respect and firm desire to
help her. He spoke at first unheeded; but gradually it appeared
that she began to comprehend his words; she moved a little, and drew
herself upright; and finally, as with a sudden movement of forgiveness,
turned on the young man a countenance in which reproach and gratitude
were mingled. ‘Ah, madam,’ he cried, ‘use me
as you will!’ And once more, but now with a great air of
deference, he offered her the conduct of his arm. She took it
with a sigh that struck him to the heart; and they began once more to
trace the deserted streets. But now her steps, as though exhausted
by emotion, began to linger on the way; she leaned the more heavily
upon his arm; and he, like the parent bird, stooped fondly above his
drooping convoy. Her physical distress was not accompanied by
any failing of her spirits; and hearing her strike so soon into a playful
and charming vein of talk, Challoner could not sufficiently admire the
elasticity of his companion’s nature. ‘Let me forget,’
she had said, ‘for one half hour, let me forget;’ and sure
enough, with the very word, her sorrows appeared to be forgotten.
Before every house she paused, invented a name for the proprietor, and
sketched his character: here lived the old general whom she was to marry
on the fifth of the next month, there was the mansion of the rich widow
who had set her heart on Challoner; and though she still hung wearily
on the young man’s arm, her laughter sounded low and pleasant
in his ears. ‘Ah,’ she sighed, by way of commentary,
‘in such a life as mine I must seize tight hold of any happiness
that I can find.’
When they arrived, in this leisurely manner, at the head of Grosvenor
Place, the gates of the park were opening and the bedraggled company
of night-walkers were being at last admitted into that paradise of lawns.
Challoner and his companion followed the movement, and walked for awhile
in silence in that tatterdemalion crowd; but as one after another, weary
with the night’s patrolling of the city pavement, sank upon the
benches or wandered into separate paths, the vast extent of the park
had soon utterly swallowed up the last of these intruders; and the pair
proceeded on their way alone in the grateful quiet of the morning.
Presently they came in sight of a bench, standing very open on a mound
of turf. The young lady looked about her with relief.
‘Here,’ she said, ‘here at last we are secure from
listeners. Here, then, you shall learn and judge my history.
I could not bear that we should part, and that you should still suppose
your kindness squandered upon one who was unworthy.’
Thereupon she sat down upon the bench, and motioning Challoner to take
a place immediately beside her, began in the following words, and with
the greatest appearance of enjoyment, to narrate the story of her life.
STORY OF THE DESTROYING ANGEL
My father was a native of England, son of a cadet of a great, ancient,
but untitled family; and by some event, fault or misfortune, he was
driven to flee from the land of his birth and to lay aside the name
of his ancestors. He sought the States; and instead of lingering
in effeminate cities, pushed at once into the far West with an exploring
party of frontiersmen. He was no ordinary traveller; for he was
not only brave and impetuous by character, but learned in many sciences,
and above all in botany, which he particularly loved. Thus it
fell that, before many months, Fremont himself, the nominal leader of
the troop, courted and bowed to his opinion.
They had pushed, as I have said, into the still unknown regions of the
West. For some time they followed the track of Mormon caravans,
guiding themselves in that vast and melancholy desert by the skeletons
of men and animals. Then they inclined their route a little to
the north, and, losing even these dire memorials, came into a country
of forbidding stillness.
I have often heard my father dwell upon the features of that ride: rock,
cliff, and barren moor alternated; the streams were very far between;
and neither beast nor bird disturbed the solitude. On the fortieth
day they had already run so short of food that it was judged advisable
to call a halt and scatter upon all sides to hunt. A great fire
was built, that its smoke might serve to rally them; and each man of
the party mounted and struck off at a venture into the surrounding desert.
My father rode for many hours with a steep range of cliffs upon the
one hand, very black and horrible; and upon the other an unwatered vale
dotted with boulders like the site of some subverted city. At
length he found the slot of a great animal, and from the claw-marks
and the hair among the brush, judged that he was on the track of a cinnamon
bear of most unusual size. He quickened the pace of his steed,
and still following the quarry, came at last to the division of two
watersheds. On the far side the country was exceeding intricate
and difficult, heaped with boulders, and dotted here and there with
a few pines, which seemed to indicate the neighbourhood of water.
Here, then, he picketed his horse, and relying on his trusty rifle,
advanced alone into that wilderness.
Presently, in the great silence that reigned, he was aware of the sound
of running water to his right; and leaning in that direction, was rewarded
by a scene of natural wonder and human pathos strangely intermixed.
The stream ran at the bottom of a narrow and winding passage, whose
wall-like sides of rock were sometimes for miles together unscalable
by man. The water, when the stream was swelled with rains, must
have filled it from side to side; the sun’s rays only plumbed
it in the hour of noon; the wind, in that narrow and damp funnel, blew
tempestuously. And yet, in the bottom of this den, immediately
below my father’s eyes as he leaned over the margin of the cliff,
a party of some half a hundred men, women, and children lay scattered
uneasily among the rocks. They lay some upon their backs, some
prone, and not one stirring; their upturned faces seemed all of an extraordinary
paleness and emaciation; and from time to time, above the washing of
the stream, a faint sound of moaning mounted to my father’s ears.
While he thus looked, an old man got staggering to his feet, unwound
his blanket, and laid it, with great gentleness, on a young girl who
sat hard by propped against a rock. The girl did not seem to be
conscious of the act; and the old man, after having looked upon her
with the most engaging pity, returned to his former bed and lay down
again uncovered on the turf. But the scene had not passed without
observation even in that starving camp. From the very outskirts
of the party, a man with a white beard and seemingly of venerable years,
rose upon his knees, and came crawling stealthily among the sleepers
towards the girl; and judge of my father’s indignation, when he
beheld this cowardly miscreant strip from her both the coverings and
return with them to his original position. Here he lay down for
a while below his spoils, and, as my father imagined, feigned to be
asleep; but presently he had raised himself again upon one elbow, looked
with sharp scrutiny at his companions, and then swiftly carried his
hand into his bosom and thence to his mouth. By the movement of
his jaws he must be eating; in that camp of famine he had reserved a
store of nourishment; and while his companions lay in the stupor of
approaching death, secretly restored his powers.
My father was so incensed at what he saw that he raised his rifle; and
but for an accident, he has often declared, he would have shot the fellow
dead upon the spot. How different would then have been my history!
But it was not to be: even as he raised the barrel, his eye lighted
on the bear, as it crawled along a ledge some way below him; and ceding
to the hunters instinct, it was at the brute, not at the man, that he
discharged his piece. The bear leaped and fell into a pool of
the river; the canyon re-echoed the report; and in a moment the camp
was afoot. With cries that were scarce human, stumbling, falling
and throwing each other down, these starving people rushed upon the
quarry; and before my father, climbing down by the ledge, had time to
reach the level of the stream, many were already satisfying their hunger
on the raw flesh, and a fire was being built by the more dainty.
His arrival was for some time unremarked. He stood in the midst
of these tottering and clay-faced marionettes; he was surrounded by
their cries; but their whole soul was fixed on the dead carcass; even
those who were too weak to move, lay, half-turned over, with their eyes
riveted upon the bear; and my father, seeing himself stand as though
invisible in the thick of this dreary hubbub, was seized with a desire
to weep. A touch upon the arm restrained him. Turning about,
he found himself face to face with the old man he had so nearly killed;
and yet, at the second glance, recognised him for no old man at all,
but one in the full strength of his years, and of a strong, speaking,
and intellectual countenance stigmatised by weariness and famine.
He beckoned my father near the cliff, and there, in the most private
whisper, begged for brandy. My father looked at him with scorn:
‘You remind me,’ he said, ‘of a neglected duty.
Here is my flask; it contains enough, I trust, to revive the women of
your party; and I will begin with her whom I saw you robbing of her
blankets.’ And with that, not heeding his appeals, my father
turned his back upon the egoist.
The girl still lay reclined against the rock; she lay too far sunk in
the first stage of death to have observed the bustle round her couch;
but when my father had raised her head, put the flask to her lips, and
forced or aided her to swallow some drops of the restorative, she opened
her languid eyes and smiled upon him faintly. Never was there
a smile of a more touching sweetness; never were eyes more deeply violet,
more honestly eloquent of the soul! I speak with knowledge, for
these were the same eyes that smiled upon me in the cradle. From
her who was to be his wife, my father, still jealously watched and followed
by the man with the grey beard, carried his attentions to all the women
of the party, and gave the last drainings of his flask to those among
the men who seemed in the most need.
‘Is there none left? not a drop for me?’ said the man with
the beard.
‘Not one drop,’ replied my father; ‘and if you find
yourself in want, let me counsel you to put your hand into the pocket
of your coat.’
‘Ah!’ cried the other, ‘you misjudge me. You
think me one who clings to life for selfish and commonplace considerations.
But let me tell you, that were all this caravan to perish, the world
would but be lightened of a weight. These are but human insects,
pullulating, thick as May-flies, in the slums of European cities, whom
I myself have plucked from degradation and misery, from the dung-heap
and gin-palace door. And you compare their lives with mine!’
‘You are then a Mormon missionary?’ asked my father.
‘Oh!’ cried the man, with a strange smile, ‘a Mormon
missionary if you will! I value not the title. Were I no
more than that, I could have died without a murmur. But with my
life as a physician is bound up the knowledge of great secrets and the
future of man. This it was, when we missed the caravan, tried
for a short cut and wandered to this desolate ravine, that ate into
my soul, and, in five days, has changed my beard from ebony to silver.’
‘And you are a physician,’ mused my father, looking on his
face, ‘bound by oath to succour man in his distresses.’
‘Sir,’ returned the Mormon, ‘my name is Grierson:
you will hear that name again; and you will then understand that my
duty was not to this caravan of paupers, but to mankind at large.’
My father turned to the remainder of the party, who were now sufficiently
revived to hear; told them that he would set off at once to bring help
from his own party; ‘and,’ he added, ‘if you be again
reduced to such extremities, look round you, and you will see the earth
strewn with assistance. Here, for instance, growing on the under
side of fissures in this cliff, you will perceive a yellow moss.
Trust me, it is both edible and excellent.’
‘Ha!’ said Doctor Grierson, ‘you know botany!’
‘Not I alone,’ returned my father, lowering his voice; ‘for
see where these have been scraped away. Am I right? Was
that your secret store?’
My father’s comrades, he found, when he returned to the signal-fire,
had made a good day’s hunting. They were thus the more easily
persuaded to extend assistance to the Mormon caravan; and the next day
beheld both parties on the march for the frontiers of Utah. The
distance to be traversed was not great; but the nature of the country,
and the difficulty of procuring food, extended the time to nearly three
weeks; and my father had thus ample leisure to know and appreciate the
girl whom he had succoured. I will call my mother Lucy.
Her family name I am not at liberty to mention; it is one you would
know well. By what series of undeserved calamities this innocent
flower of maidenhood, lovely, refined by education, ennobled by the
finest taste, was thus cast among the horrors of a Mormon caravan, I
must not stay to tell you. Let it suffice, that even in these
untoward circumstances, she found a heart worthy of her own. The
ardour of attachment which united my father and mother was perhaps partly
due to the strange manner of their meeting; it knew, at least, no bounds
either divine or human; my father, for her sake, determined to renounce
his ambitions and abjure his faith; and a week had not yet passed upon
the march before he had resigned from his party, accepted the Mormon
doctrine, and received the promise of my mother’s hand on the
arrival of the party at Salt Lake.
The marriage took place, and I was its only offspring. My father
prospered exceedingly in his affairs, remained faithful to my mother;
and though you may wonder to hear it, I believe there were few happier
homes in any country than that in which I saw the light and grew to
girlhood. We were, indeed, and in spite of all our wealth, avoided
as heretics and half-believers by the more precise and pious of the
faithful: Young himself, that formidable tyrant, was known to look askance
upon my father’s riches; but of this I had no guess. I dwelt,
indeed, under the Mormon system, with perfect innocence and faith.
Some of our friends had many wives; but such was the custom; and why
should it surprise me more than marriage itself? From time to
time one of our rich acquaintances would disappear, his family be broken
up, his wives and houses shared among the elders of the Church, and
his memory only recalled with bated breath and dreadful headshakings.
When I had been very still, and my presence perhaps was forgotten, some
such topic would arise among my elders by the evening fire; I would
see them draw the closer together and look behind them with scared eyes;
and I might gather from their whisperings how some one, rich, honoured,
healthy, and in the prime of his days, some one, perhaps, who had taken
me on his knees a week before, had in one hour been spirited from home
and family, and vanished like an image from a mirror, leaving not a
print behind. It was terrible, indeed; but so was death, the universal
law. And even if the talk should wax still bolder, full of ominous
silences and nods, and I should hear named in a whisper the Destroying
Angels, how was a child to understand these mysteries? I heard
of a Destroying Angel as some more happy child might hear in England
of a bishop or a rural dean, with vague respect and without the wish
for further information. Life anywhere, in society as in nature,
rests upon dread foundations; I beheld safe roads, a garden blooming
in the desert, pious people crowding to worship; I was aware of my parents’
tenderness and all the harmless luxuries of my existence; and why should
I pry beneath this honest seeming surface for the mysteries on which
it stood?
We dwelt originally in the city; but at an early date we moved to a
beautiful house in a green dingle, musical with splashing water, and
surrounded on almost every side by twenty miles of poisonous and rocky
desert. The city was thirty miles away; there was but one road,
which went no further than my father’s door; the rest were bridle-tracks
impassable in winter; and we thus dwelt in a solitude inconceivable
to the European. Our only neighbour was Dr. Grierson. To
my young eyes, after the hair-oiled, chin-bearded elders of the city,
and the ill-favoured and mentally stunted women of their harems, there
was something agreeable in the correct manner, the fine bearing, the
thin white hair and beard, and the piercing looks of the old doctor.
Yet, though he was almost our only visitor, I never wholly overcame
a sense of fear in his presence; and this disquietude was rather fed
by the awful solitude in which he lived and the obscurity that hung
about his occupations. His house was but a mile or two from ours,
but very differently placed. It stood overlooking the road on
the summit of a steep slope, and planted close against a range of overhanging
bluffs. Nature, you would say, had here desired to imitate the
works of man; for the slope was even, like the glacis of a fort, and
the cliffs of a constant height, like the ramparts of a city.
Not even spring could change one feature of that desolate scene; and
the windows looked down across a plain, snowy with alkali, to ranges
of cold stone sierras on the north. Twice or thrice I remember
passing within view of this forbidding residence; and seeing it always
shuttered, smokeless, and deserted, I remarked to my parents that some
day it would certainly be robbed.
‘Ah, no,’ said my father, ‘never robbed;’ and
I observed a strange conviction in his tone.
At last, and not long before the blow fell on my unhappy family, I chanced
to see the doctor’s house in a new light. My father was
ill; my mother confined to his bedside; and I was suffered to go, under
the charge of our driver, to the lonely house some twenty miles away,
where our packages were left for us. The horse cast a shoe; night
overtook us halfway home; and it was well on for three in the morning
when the driver and I, alone in a light waggon, came to that part of
the road which ran below the doctor’s house. The moon swam
clear; the cliffs and mountains in this strong light lay utterly deserted;
but the house, from its station on the top of the long slope and close
under the bluff, not only shone abroad from every window like a place
of festival, but from the great chimney at the west end poured forth
a coil of smoke so thick and so voluminous, that it hung for miles along
the windless night air, and its shadow lay far abroad in the moonlight
upon the glittering alkali. As we continued to draw near, besides,
a regular and panting throb began to divide the silence. First
it seemed to me like the beating of a heart; and next it put into my
mind the thought of some giant, smothered under mountains and still,
with incalculable effort, fetching breath. I had heard of the
railway, though I had not seen it, and I turned to ask the driver if
this resembled it. But some look in his eye, some pallor, whether
of fear or moonlight on his face, caused the words to die upon my lips.
We continued, therefore, to advance in silence, till we were close below
the lighted house; when suddenly, without one premonitory rustle, there
burst forth a report of such a bigness that it shook the earth and set
the echoes of the mountains thundering from cliff to cliff. A
pillar of amber flame leaped from the chimney-top and fell in multitudes
of sparks; and at the same time the lights in the windows turned for
one instant ruby red and then expired. The driver had checked
his horse instinctively, and the echoes were still rumbling farther
off among the mountains, when there broke from the now darkened interior
a series of yells - whether of man or woman it was impossible to guess
- the door flew open, and there ran forth into the moonlight, at the
top of the long slope, a figure clad in white, which began to dance
and leap and throw itself down, and roll as if in agony, before the
house. I could no more restrain my cries; the driver laid his
lash about the horse’s flank, and we fled up the rough track at
the peril of our lives; and did not draw rein till, turning the corner
of the mountain, we beheld my father’s ranch and deep, green groves
and gardens, sleeping in the tranquil light.
This was the one adventure of my life, until my father had climbed to
the very topmost point of material prosperity, and I myself had reached
the age of seventeen. I was still innocent and merry like a child;
tended my garden or ran upon the hills in glad simplicity; gave not
a thought to coquetry or to material cares; and if my eye rested on
my own image in a mirror or some sylvan spring, it was to seek and recognise
the features of my parents. But the fears which had long pressed
on others were now to be laid on my youth. I had thrown myself,
one sultry, cloudy afternoon, on a divan; the windows stood open on
the verandah, where my mother sat with her embroidery; and when my father
joined her from the garden, their conversation, clearly audible to me,
was of so startling a nature that it held me enthralled where I lay.
‘The blow has come,’ my father said, after a long pause.
I could hear my mother start and turn, but in words she made no reply.
‘Yes,’ continued my father, ‘I have received to-day
a list of all that I possess; of all, I say; of what I have lent privately
to men whose lips are sealed with terror; of what I have buried with
my own hand on the bare mountain, when there was not a bird in heaven.
Does the air, then, carry secrets? Are the hills of glass?
Do the stones we tread upon preserve the footprint to betray us?
Oh, Lucy, Lucy, that we should have come to such a country!’
‘But this,’ returned my mother, ‘is no very new or
very threatening event. You are accused of some concealment.
You will pay more taxes in the future, and be mulcted in a fine.
It is disquieting, indeed, to find our acts so spied upon, and the most
private known. But is this new? Have we not long feared
and suspected every blade of grass?’
‘Ay, and our shadows!’ cried my father. ‘But
all this is nothing. Here is the letter that accompanied the list.’
I heard my mother turn the pages, and she was some time silent.
‘I see,’ she said at last; and then, with the tone of one
reading: ‘“From a believer so largely blessed by Providence
with this world’s goods,”’ she continued, ‘“the
Church awaits in confidence some signal mark of piety.”
There lies the sting. Am I not right? These are the words
you fear?’
‘These are the words,’ replied my father. ‘Lucy,
you remember Priestley? Two days before he disappeared, he carried
me to the summit of an isolated butte; we could see around us for ten
miles; sure, if in any quarter of this land a man were safe from spies,
it were in such a station; but it was in the very ague-fit of terror
that he told me, and that I heard, his story. He had received
a letter such as this; and he submitted to my approval an answer, in
which he offered to resign a third of his possessions. I conjured
him, as he valued life, to raise his offering; and, before we parted,
he had doubled the amount. Well, two days later he was gone -
gone from the chief street of the city in the hour of noon - and gone
for ever. O God!’ cried my father, ‘by what art do
they thus spirit out of life the solid body? What death do they
command that leaves no traces? that this material structure, these strong
arms, this skeleton that can resist the grave for centuries, should
be thus reft in a moment from the world of sense? A horror dwells
in that thought more awful than mere death.’
‘Is there no hope in Grierson?’ asked my mother.
‘Dismiss the thought,’ replied my father. ‘He
now knows all that I can teach, and will do naught to save me.
His power, besides, is small, his own danger not improbably more imminent
than mine; for he, too, lives apart; he leaves his wives neglected and
unwatched; he is openly cited for an unbeliever; and unless he buys
security at a more awful price - but no; I will not believe it: I have
no love for him, but I will not believe it.’
‘Believe what?’ asked my mother; and then, with a change
of note, ‘But oh, what matters it?’ she cried. ‘Abimelech,
there is but one way open: we must fly!’
‘It is in vain,’ returned my father. ‘I should
but involve you in my fate. To leave this land is hopeless: we
are closed in it as men are closed in life; and there is no issue but
the grave.’
‘We can but die then,’ replied my mother. ‘Let
us at least die together. Let not Asenath {2}
and myself survive you. Think to what a fate we should be doomed!’
My father was unable to resist her tender violence; and though I could
see he nourished not one spark of hope, he consented to desert his whole
estate, beyond some hundreds of dollars that he had by him at the moment,
and to flee that night, which promised to be dark and cloudy.
As soon as the servants were asleep, he was to load two mules with provisions;
two others were to carry my mother and myself; and, striking through
the mountains by an unfrequented trail, we were to make a fair stroke
for liberty and life. As soon as they had thus decided, I showed
myself at the window, and, owning that I had heard all, assured them
that they could rely on my prudence and devotion. I had no fear,
indeed, but to show myself unworthy of my birth; I held my life in my
hand without alarm; and when my father, weeping upon my neck, had blessed
Heaven for the courage of his child, it was with a sentiment of pride
and some of the joy that warriors take in war, that I began to look
forward to the perils of our flight.
Before midnight, under an obscure and starless heaven, we had left far
behind us the plantations of the valley, and were mounting a certain
canyon in the hills, narrow, encumbered with great rocks, and echoing
with the roar of a tumultuous torrent. Cascade after cascade thundered
and hung up its flag of whiteness in the night, or fanned our faces
with the wet wind of its descent. The trail was breakneck, and
led to famine-guarded deserts; it had been long since deserted for more
practicable routes; and it was now a part of the world untrod from year
to year by human footing. Judge of our dismay, when turning suddenly
an angle of the cliffs, we found a bright bonfire blazing by itself
under an impending rock; and on the face of the rock, drawn very rudely
with charred wood, the great Open Eye which is the emblem of the Mormon
faith. We looked upon each other in the firelight; my mother broke
into a passion of tears; but not a word was said. The mules were
turned about; and leaving that great eye to guard the lonely canyon,
we retraced our steps in silence. Day had not yet broken ere we
were once more at home, condemned beyond reprieve.
What answer my father sent I was not told; but two days later, a little
before sundown, I saw a plain, honest-looking man ride slowly up the
road in a great pother of dust. He was clad in homespun, with
a broad straw hat; wore a patriarchal beard; and had an air of a simple
rustic farmer, that was, in my eyes, very reassuring. He was,
indeed, a very honest man and pious Mormon; with no liking for his errand,
though neither he nor any one in Utah dared to disobey; and it was with
every mark of diffidence that he had had himself announced as Mr. Aspinwall,
and entered the room where our unhappy family was gathered. My
mother and me, he awkwardly enough dismissed; and as soon as he was
alone with my father laid before him a blank signature of President
Young’s, and offered him a choice of services: either to set out
as a missionary to the tribes about the White Sea, or to join the next
day, with a party of Destroying Angels, in the massacre of sixty German
immigrants. The last, of course, my father could not entertain,
and the first he regarded as a pretext: even if he could consent to
leave his wife defenceless, and to collect fresh victims for the tyranny
under which he was himself oppressed, he felt sure he would never be
suffered to return. He refused both; and Aspinwall, he said, betrayed
sincere emotion, part religious, at the spectacle of such disobedience,
but part human, in pity for my father and his family. He besought
him to reconsider his decision; and at length, finding he could not
prevail, gave him till the moon rose to settle his affairs, and say
farewell to wife and daughter. ‘For,’ said he, ‘then,
at the latest, you must ride with me.’
I dare not dwell upon the hours that followed: they fled all too fast;
and presently the moon out-topped the eastern range, and my father and
Mr. Aspinwall set forth, side by side, on their nocturnal journey.
My mother, though still bearing an heroic countenance, had hastened
to shut herself in her apartment, thenceforward solitary; and I, alone
in the dark house, and consumed by grief and apprehension, made haste
to saddle my Indian pony, to ride up to the corner of the mountain,
and to enjoy one farewell sight of my departing father. The two
men had set forth at a deliberate pace; nor was I long behind them,
when I reached the point of view. I was the more amazed to see
no moving creature in the landscape. The moon, as the saying is,
shone bright as day; and nowhere, under the whole arch of night, was
there a growing tree, a bush, a farm, a patch of tillage, or any evidence
of man, but one. From the corner where I stood, a rugged bastion
of the line of bluffs concealed the doctor’s house; and across
the top of that projection the soft night wind carried and unwound about
the hills a coil of sable smoke. What fuel could produce a vapour
so sluggish to dissipate in that dry air, or what furnace pour it forth
so copiously, I was unable to conceive; but I knew well enough that
it came from the doctor’s chimney; I saw well enough that my father
had already disappeared; and in despite of reason, I connected in my
mind the loss of that dear protector with the ribbon of foul smoke that
trailed along the mountains.
Days passed, and still my mother and I waited in vain for news; a week
went by, a second followed, but we heard no word of the father and husband.
As smoke dissipates, as the image glides from the mirror, so in the
ten or twenty minutes that I had spent in getting my horse and following
upon his trail, had that strong and brave man vanished out of life.
Hope, if any hope we had, fled with every hour; the worst was now certain
for my father, the worst was to be dreaded for his defenceless family.
Without weakness, with a desperate calm at which I marvel when I look
back upon it, the widow and the orphan awaited the event. On the
last day of the third week we rose in the morning to find ourselves
alone in the house, alone, so far as we searched, on the estate; all
our attendants, with one accord, had fled: and as we knew them to be
gratefully devoted, we drew the darkest intimations from their flight.
The day passed, indeed, without event; but in the fall of the evening
we were called at last into the verandah by the approaching clink of
horse’s hoofs.
The doctor, mounted on an Indian pony, rode into the garden, dismounted,
and saluted us. He seemed much more bent, and his hair more silvery
than ever; but his demeanour was composed, serious, and not unkind.
‘Madam,’ said he, ‘I am come upon a weighty errand;
and I would have you recognise it as an effect of kindness in the President,
that he should send as his ambassador your only neighbour and your husband’s
oldest friend in Utah.’
‘Sir,’ said my mother, ‘I have but one concern, one
thought. You know well what it is. Speak: my husband?’
‘Madam,’ returned the doctor, taking a chair on the verandah,
‘if you were a silly child, my position would now be painfully
embarrassing. You are, on the other hand, a woman of great intelligence
and fortitude: you have, by my forethought, been allowed three weeks
to draw your own conclusions and to accept the inevitable. Farther
words from me are, I conceive, superfluous.’
My mother was as pale as death, and trembled like a reed; I gave her
my hand, and she kept it in the folds of her dress and wrung it till
I could have cried aloud. ‘Then, sir,’ said she at
last, ‘you speak to deaf ears. If this be indeed so, what
have I to do with errands? What do I ask of Heaven but to die?’
‘Come,’ said the doctor, ‘command yourself.
I bid you dismiss all thoughts of your late husband, and bring a clear
mind to bear upon your own future and the fate of that young girl.’
‘You bid me dismiss - ’ began my mother. ‘Then
you know!’ she cried.
‘I know,’ replied the doctor.
‘You know?’ broke out the poor woman. ‘Then
it was you who did the deed! I tear off the mask, and with dread
and loathing see you as you are - you, whom the poor fugitive beholds
in nightmares, and awakes raving - you, the Destroying Angel!’
‘Well, madam, and what then?’ returned the doctor.
‘Have not my fate and yours been similar? Are we not both
immured in this strong prison of Utah? Have you not tried to flee,
and did not the Open Eye confront you in the canyon? Who can escape
the watch of that unsleeping eye of Utah? Not I, at least.
Horrible tasks have, indeed, been laid upon me; and the most ungrateful
was the last; but had I refused my offices, would that have spared your
husband? You know well it would not. I, too, had perished
along with him; nor would I have been able to alleviate his last moments,
nor could I to-day have stood between his family and the hand of Brigham
Young.’
‘Ah!’ cried I, ‘and could you purchase life by such
concessions?’
‘Young lady,’ answered the doctor, ‘I both could and
did; and you will live to thank me for that baseness. You have
a spirit, Asenath, that it pleases me to recognise. But we waste
time. Mr. Fonblanque’s estate reverts, as you doubtless
imagine, to the Church; but some part of it has been reserved for him
who is to marry the family; and that person, I should perhaps tell you
without more delay, is no other than myself.’
At this odious proposal my mother and I cried out aloud, and clung together
like lost souls.
‘It is as I supposed,’ resumed the doctor, with the same
measured utterance. ‘You recoil from this arrangement.
Do you expect me to convince you? You know very well that I have
never held the Mormon view of women. Absorbed in the most arduous
studies, I have left the slatterns whom they call my wives to scratch
and quarrel among themselves; of me, they have had nothing but my purse;
such was not the union I desired, even if I had the leisure to pursue
it. No: you need not, madam, and my old friend’ - and here
the doctor rose and bowed with something of gallantry - ‘you need
not apprehend my importunities. On the contrary, I am rejoiced
to read in you a Roman spirit; and if I am obliged to bid you follow
me at once, and that in the name, not of my wish, but of my orders,
I hope it will be found that we are of a common mind.’
So, bidding us dress for the road, he took a lamp (for the night had
now fallen) and set off to the stable to prepare our horses.
‘What does it mean? - what will become of us?’ I cried.
‘Not that, at least,’ replied my mother, shuddering.
‘So far we can trust him. I seem to read among his words
a certain tragic promise. Asenath, if I leave you, if I die, you
will not forget your miserable parents?’
Thereupon we fell to cross-purposes: I beseeching her to explain her
words; she putting me by, and continuing to recommend the doctor for
a friend. ‘The doctor!’ I cried at last; ‘the
man who killed my father?’
‘Nay,’ said she, ‘let us be just. I do believe
before, Heaven, he played the friendliest part. And he alone,
Asenath, can protect you in this land of death.’
At this the doctor returned, leading our two horses; and when we were
all in the saddle, he bade me ride on before, as he had matter to discuss
with Mrs. Fonblanque. They came at a foot’s pace, eagerly
conversing in a whisper; and presently after the moon rose and showed
them looking eagerly in each other’s faces as they went, my mother
laying her hand upon the doctor’s arm, and the doctor himself,
against his usual custom, making vigorous gestures of protest or asseveration.
At the foot of the track which ascended the talus of the mountain to
his door, the doctor overtook me at a trot.
‘Here,’ he said, ‘we shall dismount; and as your mother
prefers to be alone, you and I shall walk together to my house.’
‘Shall I see her again?’ I asked.
‘I give you my word,’ he said, and helped me to alight.
‘We leave the horses here,’ he added. ‘There
are no thieves in this stone wilderness.’
The track mounted gradually, keeping the house in view. The windows
were once more bright; the chimney once more vomited smoke; but the
most absolute silence reigned, and, but for the figure of my mother
very slowly following in our wake, I felt convinced there was no human
soul within a range of miles. At the thought, I looked upon the
doctor, gravely walking by my side, with his bowed shoulders and white
hair, and then once more at his house, lit up and pouring smoke like
some industrious factory. And then my curiosity broke forth.
‘In Heaven’s name,’ I cried, ‘what do you make
in this inhuman desert?’
He looked at me with a peculiar smile, and answered with an evasion
-
‘This is not the first time,’ said he, ‘that you have
seen my furnaces alight. One morning, in the small hours, I saw
you driving past; a delicate experiment miscarried; and I cannot acquit
myself of having startled either your driver or the horse that drew
you.’
‘What!’ cried I, beholding again in fancy the antics of
the figure, ‘could that be you?’
‘It was I,’ he replied; ‘but do not fancy that I was
mad. I was in agony. I had been scalded cruelly.’
We were now near the house, which, unlike the ordinary houses of the
country, was built of hewn stone and very solid. Stone, too, was
its foundation, stone its background. Not a blade of grass sprouted
among the broken mineral about the walls, not a flower adorned the windows.
Over the door, by way of sole adornment, the Mormon Eye was rudely sculptured;
I had been brought up to view that emblem from my childhood; but since
the night of our escape, it had acquired a new significance, and set
me shrinking. The smoke rolled voluminously from the chimney top,
its edges ruddy with the fire; and from the far corner of the building,
near the ground, angry puffs of steam shone snow-white in the moon and
vanished.
The doctor opened the door and paused upon the threshold. ‘You
ask me what I make here,’ he observed. ‘Two things:
Life and Death.’ And he motioned me to enter.
‘I shall await my mother,’ said I.
‘Child,’ he replied, ‘look at me: am I not old and
broken? Of us two, which is the stronger, the young maiden or
the withered man?’
I bowed, and passing by him, entered a vestibule or kitchen, lit by
a good fire and a shaded reading-lamp. It was furnished only with
a dresser, a rude table, and some wooden benches; and on one of these
the doctor motioned me to take a seat; and passing by another door into
the interior of the house, he left me to myself. Presently I heard
the jar of iron from the far end of the building; and this was followed
by the same throbbing noise that had startled me in the valley, but
now so near at hand as to be menacing by loudness, and even to shake
the house with every recurrence of the stroke. I had scarce time
to master my alarm when the doctor returned, and almost in the same
moment my mother appeared upon the threshold. But how am I to
describe to you the peace and ravishment of that face? Years seemed
to have passed over her head during that brief ride, and left her younger
and fairer; her eyes shone, her smile went to my heart; she seemed no
more a woman but the angel of ecstatic tenderness. I ran to her
in a kind of terror; but she shrank a little back and laid her finger
on her lips, with something arch and yet unearthly. To the doctor,
on the contrary, she reached out her hand as to a friend and helper;
and so strange was the scene that I forgot to be offended.
‘Lucy,’ said the doctor, ‘all is prepared. Will
you go alone, or shall your daughter follow us?’
‘Let Asenath come,’ she answered, ‘dear Asenath!
At this hour, when I am purified of fear and sorrow, and already survive
myself and my affections, it is for your sake, and not for mine, that
I desire her presence. Were she shut out, dear friend, it is to
be feared she might misjudge your kindness.’
‘Mother,’ I cried wildly, ‘mother, what is this?’
But my mother, with her radiant smile, said only ‘Hush!’
as though I were a child again, and tossing in some fever-fit; and the
doctor bade me be silent and trouble her no more. ‘You have
made a choice,’ he continued, addressing my mother, ‘that
has often strangely tempted me. The two extremes: all, or else
nothing; never, or this very hour upon the clock - these have been my
incongruous desires. But to accept the middle term, to be content
with a half-gift, to flicker awhile and to burn out - never for an hour,
never since I was born, has satisfied the appetite of my ambition.’
He looked upon my mother fixedly, much of admiration and some touch
of envy in his eyes; then, with a profound sigh, he led the way into
the inner room.
It was very long. From end to end it was lit up by many lamps,
which by the changeful colour of their light, and by the incessant snapping
sounds with which they burned, I have since divined to be electric.
At the extreme end an open door gave us a glimpse into what must have
been a lean-to shed beside the chimney; and this, in strong contrast
to the room, was painted with a red reverberation as from furnace-doors.
The walls were lined with books and glazed cases, the tables crowded
with the implements of chemical research; great glass accumulators glittered
in the light; and through a hole in the gable near the shed door, a
heavy driving-belt entered the apartment and ran overhead upon steel
pulleys, with clumsy activity and many ghostly and fluttering sounds.
In one corner I perceived a chair resting upon crystal feet, and curiously
wreathed with wire. To this my mother advanced with a decisive
swiftness.
‘Is this it?’ she asked.
The doctor bowed in silence.
‘Asenath,’ said my mother, ‘in this sad end of my
life I have found one helper. Look upon him: it is Doctor Grierson.
Be not, oh my daughter, be not ungrateful to that friend!’
She sate upon the chair, and took in her hands the globes that terminated
the arms.
‘Am I right?’ she asked, and looked upon the doctor with
such a radiancy of face that I trembled for her reason. Once more
the doctor bowed, but this time leaning hard against the wall.
He must have touched a spring. The least shock agitated my mother
where she sat; the least passing jar appeared to cross her features;
and she sank back in the chair like one resigned to weariness.
I was at her knees that moment; but her hands fell loosely in my grasp;
her face, still beatified with the same touching smile, sank forward
on her bosom: her spirit had for ever fled.
I do not know how long may have elapsed before, raising for a moment
my tearful face, I met the doctor’s eyes. They rested upon
mine with such a depth of scrutiny, pity, and interest, that even from
the freshness of my sorrow, I was startled into attention.
‘Enough,’ he said, ‘to lamentation. Your mother
went to death as to a bridal, dying where her husband died. It
is time, Asenath, to think of the survivors. Follow me to the
next room.’
I followed him, like a person in a dream; he made me sit by the fire,
he gave me wine to drink; and then, pacing the stone floor, he thus
began to address me -
‘You are now, my child, alone in the world, and under the immediate
watch of Brigham Young. It would be your lot, in ordinary circumstances,
to become the fiftieth bride of some ignoble elder, or by particular
fortune, as fortune is counted in this land, to find favour in the eyes
of the President himself. Such a fate for a girl like you were
worse than death; better to die as your mother died than to sink daily
deeper in the mire of this pit of woman’s degradation. But
is escape conceivable? Your father tried; and you beheld yourself
with what security his jailers acted, and how a dumb drawing on a rock
was counted a sufficient sentry over the avenues of freedom. Where
your father failed, will you be wiser or more fortunate? or are you,
too, helpless in the toils?’
I had followed his words with changing emotion, but now I believed I
understood.
‘I see,’ I cried; ‘you judge me rightly. I must
follow where my parents led; and oh! I am not only willing, I am eager!’
‘No,’ replied the doctor, ‘not death for you.
The flawed vessel we may break, but not the perfect. No, your
mother cherished a different hope, and so do I. I see,’
he cried, ‘the girl develop to the completed woman, the plan reach
fulfilment, the promise - ay, outdone! I could not bear to arrest
so lively, so comely a process. It was your mother’s thought,’
he added, with a change of tone, ‘that I should marry you myself.’
I fear I must have shown a perfect horror of aversion from this fate,
for he made haste to quiet me. ‘Reassure yourself, Asenath,’
he resumed. ‘Old as I am, I have not forgotten the tumultuous
fancies of youth. I have passed my days, indeed, in laboratories;
but in all my vigils I have not forgotten the tune of a young pulse.
Age asks with timidity to be spared intolerable pain; youth, taking
fortune by the beard, demands joy like a right. These things I
have not forgotten; none, rather, has more keenly felt, none more jealously
considered them; I have but postponed them to their day. See,
then: you stand without support; the only friend left to you, this old
investigator, old in cunning, young in sympathy. Answer me but
one question: Are you free from the entanglement of what the world calls
love? Do you still command your heart and purposes? or are you
fallen in some bond-slavery of the eye and ear?’
I answered him in broken words; my heart, I think I must have told him,
lay with my dead parents.
‘It is enough,’ he said. ‘It has been my fate
to be called on often, too often, for those services of which we spoke
to-night; none in Utah could carry them so well to a conclusion; hence
there has fallen into my hands a certain share of influence which I
now lay at your service, partly for the sake of my dead friends, your
parents; partly for the interest I bear you in your own right.
I shall send you to England, to the great city of London, there to await
the bridegroom I have selected. He shall be a son of mine, a young
man suitable in age and not grossly deficient in that quality of beauty
that your years demand. Since your heart is free, you may well
pledge me the sole promise that I ask in return for much expense and
still more danger: to await the arrival of that bridegroom with the
delicacy of a wife.’
I sat awhile stunned. The doctor’s marriages, I remembered
to have heard, had been unfruitful; and this added perplexity to my
distress. But I was alone, as he had said, alone in that dark
land; the thought of escape, of any equal marriage, was already enough
to revive in me some dawn of hope; and in what words I know not, I accepted
the proposal.
He seemed more moved by my consent than I could reasonably have looked
for. ‘You shall see,’ he cried; ‘you shall judge
for yourself.’ And hurrying to the next room he returned
with a small portrait somewhat coarsely done in oils. It showed
a man in the dress of nearly forty years before, young indeed, but still
recognisable to be the doctor. ‘Do you like it?’ he
asked. ‘That is myself when I was young. My - my boy
will be like that, like but nobler; with such health as angels might
condescend to envy; and a man of mind, Asenath, of commanding mind.
That should be a man, I think; that should be one among ten thousand.
A man like that - one to combine the passions of youth with the restraint,
the force, the dignity of age - one to fill all the parts and faculties,
one to be man’s epitome - say, will that not satisfy the needs
of an ambitious girl? Say, is not that enough?’ And
as he held the picture close before my eyes, his hands shook.
I told him briefly I would ask no better, for I was transpierced with
this display of fatherly emotion; but even as I said the words, the
most insolent revolt surged through my arteries. I held him in
horror, him, his portrait, and his son; and had there been any choice
but death or a Mormon marriage, I declare before Heaven I had embraced
it.
‘It is well,’ he replied, ‘and I had rightly counted
on your spirit. Eat, then, for you have far to go.’
So saying, he set meat before me; and while I was endeavouring to obey,
he left the room and returned with an armful of coarse raiment.
‘There,’ said he, ‘is your disguise. I leave
you to your toilet.’
The clothes had probably belonged to a somewhat lubberly boy of fifteen;
and they hung about me like a sack, and cruelly hampered my movements.
But what filled me with uncontrollable shudderings, was the problem
of their origin and the fate of the lad to whom they had belonged.
I had scarcely effected the exchange when the doctor returned, opened
a back window, helped me out into the narrow space between the house
and the overhanging bluffs, and showed me a ladder of iron footholds
mortised in the rock. ‘Mount,’ he said, ‘swiftly.
When you are at the summit, walk, so far as you are able, in the shadow
of the smoke. The smoke will bring you, sooner or later, to a
canyon; follow that down, and you will find a man with two horses.
Him you will implicitly obey. And remember, silence! That
machinery, which I now put in motion for your service, may by one word
be turned against you. Go; Heaven prosper you!’
The ascent was easy. Arrived at the top of the cliff, I saw before
me on the other side a vast and gradual declivity of stone, lying bare
to the moon and the surrounding mountains. Nowhere was any vantage
or concealment; and knowing how these deserts were beset with spies,
I made haste to veil my movements under the blowing trail of smoke.
Sometimes it swam high, rising on the night wind, and I had no more
substantial curtain than its moon-thrown shadow; sometimes again it
crawled upon the earth, and I would walk in it, no higher than to my
shoulders, like some mountain fog. But, one way or another, the
smoke of that ill-omened furnace protected the first steps of my escape,
and led me unobserved to the canyon.
There, sure enough, I found a taciturn and sombre man beside a pair
of saddle-horses; and thenceforward, all night long, we wandered in
silence by the most occult and dangerous paths among the mountains.
A little before the dayspring we took refuge in a wet and gusty cavern
at the bottom of a gorge; lay there all day concealed; and the next
night, before the glow had faded out of the west, resumed our wanderings.
About noon we stopped again, in a lawn upon a little river, where was
a screen of bushes; and here my guide, handing me a bundle from his
pack, bade me change my dress once more. The bundle contained
clothing of my own, taken from our house, with such necessaries as a
comb and soap. I made my toilet by the mirror of a quiet pool;
and as I was so doing, and smiling with some complacency to see myself
restored to my own image, the mountains rang with a scream of far more
than human piercingness; and while I still stood astonished, there sprang
up and swiftly increased a storm of the most awful and earth-rending
sounds. Shall I own to you, that I fell upon my face and shrieked?
And yet this was but the overland train winding among the near mountains:
the very means of my salvation: the strong wings that were to carry
me from Utah!
When I was dressed, the guide gave me a bag, which contained, he said,
both money and papers; and telling me that I was already over the borders
in the territory of Wyoming, bade me follow the stream until I reached
the railway station, half a mile below. ‘Here,’ he
added, ‘is your ticket as far as Council Bluffs. The East
express will pass in a few hours.’ With that, he took both
horses, and, without further words or any salutation, rode off by the
way that we had come.
Three hours afterwards, I was seated on the end platform of the train
as it swept eastward through the gorges and thundered in tunnels of
the mountain. The change of scene, the sense of escape, the still
throbbing terror of pursuit - above all, the astounding magic of my
new conveyance, kept me from any logical or melancholy thought.
I had gone to the doctor’s house two nights before prepared to
die, prepared for worse than death; what had passed, terrible although
it was, looked almost bright compared to my anticipations; and it was
not till I had slept a full night in the flying palace car, that I awoke
to the sense of my irreparable loss and to some reasonable alarm about
the future. In this mood, I examined the contents of the bag.
It was well supplied with gold; it contained tickets and complete directions
for my journey as far as Liverpool, and a long letter from the doctor,
supplying me with a fictitious name and story, recommending the most
guarded silence, and bidding me to await faithfully the coming of his
son. All then had been arranged beforehand: he had counted upon
my consent, and what was tenfold worse, upon my mother’s voluntary
death. My horror of my only friend, my aversion for this son who
was to marry me, my revolt against the whole current and conditions
of my life, were now complete. I was sitting stupefied by my distress
and helplessness, when, to my joy, a very pleasant lady offered me her
conversation. I clutched at the relief; and I was soon glibly
telling her the story in the doctor’s letter: how I was a Miss
Gould, of Nevada City, going to England to an uncle, what money I had,
what family, my age, and so forth, until I had exhausted my instructions,
and, as the lady still continued to ply me with questions, began to
embroider on my own account. This soon carried one of my inexperience
beyond her depth; and I had already remarked a shadow on the lady’s
face, when a gentleman drew near and very civilly addressed me.
‘Miss Gould, I believe?’ said he; and then, excusing himself
to the lady by the authority of my guardian, drew me to the fore platform
of the Pullman car. ‘Miss Gould,’ he said in my ear,
‘is it possible that you suppose yourself in safety? Let
me completely undeceive you. One more such indiscretion and you
return to Utah. And, in the meanwhile, if this woman should again
address you, you are to reply with these words: “Madam, I do not
like you, and I will be obliged if you will suffer me to choose my own
associates.”’
Alas, I had to do as I was bid; this lady, to whom I already felt myself
drawn with the strongest cords of sympathy, I dismissed with insult;
and thenceforward, through all that day, I sat in silence, gazing on
the bare plains and swallowing my tears. Let that suffice: it
was the pattern of my journey. Whether on the train, at the hotels,
or on board the ocean steamer, I never exchanged a friendly word with
any fellow-traveller but I was certain to be interrupted. In every
place, on every side, the most unlikely persons, man or woman, rich
or poor, became protectors to forward me upon my journey, or spies to
observe and regulate my conduct. Thus I crossed the States, thus
passed the ocean, the Mormon Eye still following my movements; and when
at length a cab had set me down before that London lodging-house from
which you saw me flee this morning, I had already ceased to struggle
and ceased to hope.
The landlady, like every one else through all that journey, was expecting
my arrival. A fire was lighted in my room, which looked upon the
garden; there were books on the table, clothes in the drawers; and there
(I had almost said with contentment, and certainly with resignation)
I saw month follow month over my head. At times my landlady took
me for a walk or an excursion, but she would never suffer me to leave
the house alone; and I, seeing that she also lived under the shadow
of that widespread Mormon terror, felt too much pity to resist.
To the child born on Mormon soil, as to the man who accepts the engagements
of a secret order, no escape is possible; so I had clearly read, and
I was thankful even for this respite. Meanwhile, I tried honestly
to prepare my mind for my approaching nuptials. The day drew near
when my bridegroom was to visit me, and gratitude and fear alike obliged
me to consent. A son of Doctor Grierson’s, be he what he
pleased, must still be young, and it was even probable he should be
handsome; on more than that, I felt I dared not reckon; and in moulding
my mind towards consent I dwelt the more carefully on these physical
attractions which I felt I might expect, and averted my eyes from moral
or intellectual considerations. We have a great power upon our
spirits; and as time passed I worked myself into a frame of acquiescence,
nay, and I began to grow impatient for the hour. At night sleep
forsook me; I sat all day by the fire, absorbed in dreams, conjuring
up the features of my husband, and anticipating in fancy the touch of
his hand and the sound of his voice. In the dead level and solitude
of my existence, this was the one eastern window and the one door of
hope. At last, I had so cultivated and prepared my will, that
I began to be besieged with fears upon the other side. How if
it was I that did not please? How if this unseen lover should
turn from me with disaffection? And now I spent hours before the
glass, studying and judging my attractions, and was never weary of changing
my dress or ordering my hair.
When the day came I was long about my toilet; but at last, with a sort
of hopeful desperation, I had to own that I could do no more, and must
now stand or fall by nature. My occupation ended, I fell a prey
to the most sickening impatience, mingled with alarms; giving ear to
the swelling rumour of the streets, and at each change of sound or silence,
starting, shrinking, and colouring to the brow. Love is not to
be prepared, I know, without some knowledge of the object; and yet,
when the cab at last rattled to the door and I heard my visitor mount
the stairs, such was the tumult of hopes in my poor bosom that love
itself might have been proud to own their parentage. The door
opened, and it was Doctor Grierson that appeared. I believe I
must have screamed aloud, and I know, at least, that I fell fainting
to the floor.
When I came to myself he was standing over me, counting my pulse.
‘I have startled you,’ he said. ‘A difficulty
unforeseen - the impossibility of obtaining a certain drug in its full
purity - has forced me to resort to London unprepared. I regret
that I should have shown myself once more without those poor attractions
which are much, perhaps, to you, but to me are no more considerable
than rain that falls into the sea. Youth is but a state, as passing
as that syncope from which you are but just awakened, and, if there
be truth in science, as easy to recall; for I find, Asenath, that I
must now take you for my confidant. Since my first years, I have
devoted every hour and act of life to one ambitious task; and the time
of my success is at hand. In these new countries, where I was
so long content to stay, I collected indispensable ingredients; I have
fortified myself on every side from the possibility of error; what was
a dream now takes the substance of reality; and when I offered you a
son of mine I did so in a figure. That son - that husband, Asenath,
is myself - not as you now behold me, but restored to the first energy
of youth. You think me mad? It is the customary attitude
of ignorance. I will not argue; I will leave facts to speak.
When you behold me purified, invigorated, renewed, restamped in the
original image - when you recognise in me (what I shall be) the first
perfect expression of the powers of mankind - I shall be able to laugh
with a better grace at your passing and natural incredulity. To
what can you aspire - fame, riches, power, the charm of youth, the dear-bought
wisdom of age - that I shall not be able to afford you in perfection?
Do not deceive yourself. I already excel you in every human gift
but one: when that gift also has been restored to me you will recognise
your master.’
Hereupon, consulting his watch, he told me he must now leave me to myself;
and bidding me consult reason, and not girlish fancies, he withdrew.
I had not the courage to move; the night fell and found me still where
he had laid me during my faint, my face buried in my hands, my soul
drowned in the darkest apprehensions. Late in the evening he returned,
carrying a candle, and, with a certain irritable tremor, bade me rise
and sup. ‘Is it possible,’ he added, ‘that I
have been deceived in your courage? A cowardly girl is no fit
mate for me.’
I flung myself before him on my knees, and with floods of tears besought
him to release me from this engagement, assuring him that my cowardice
was abject, and that in every point of intellect and character I was
his hopeless and derisible inferior.
‘Why, certainly,’ he replied. ‘I know you better
than yourself; and I am well enough acquainted with human nature to
understand this scene. It is addressed to me,’ he added
with a smile, ‘in my character of the still untransformed.
But do not alarm yourself about the future. Let me but attain
my end, and not you only, Asenath, but every woman on the face of the
earth becomes my willing slave.’
Thereupon he obliged me to rise and eat; sat down with me to table;
helped and entertained me with the attentions of a fashionable host;
and it was not till a late hour, that, bidding me courteously good-night,
he once more left me alone to my misery.
In all this talk of an elixir and the restoration of his youth, I scarce
knew from which hypothesis I should the more eagerly recoil. If
his hopes reposed on any base of fact, if indeed, by some abhorrent
miracle, he should discard his age, death were my only refuge from that
most unnatural, that most ungodly union. If, on the other hand,
these dreams were merely lunatic, the madness of a life waxed suddenly
acute, my pity would become a load almost as heavy to bear as my revolt
against the marriage. So passed the night, in alternations of
rebellion and despair, of hate and pity; and with the next morning I
was only to comprehend more fully my enslaved position. For though
he appeared with a very tranquil countenance, he had no sooner observed
the marks of grief upon my brow than an answering darkness gathered
on his own. ‘Asenath.’ he said, ‘you owe me
much already; with one finger I still hold you suspended over death;
my life is full of labour and anxiety; and I choose,’ said he,
with a remarkable accent of command, ‘that you shall greet me
with a pleasant face.’ He never needed to repeat the recommendation;
from that day forward I was always ready to receive him with apparent
cheerfulness; and he rewarded me with a good deal of his company, and
almost more than I could bear of his confidence. He had set up
a laboratory in the back part of the house, where he toiled day and
night at his elixir, and he would come thence to visit me in my parlour:
now with passing humours of discouragement; now, and far more often,
radiant with hope. It was impossible to see so much of him, and
not to recognise that the sands of his life were running low; and yet
all the time he would be laying out vast fields of future, and planning,
with all the confidence of youth, the most unbounded schemes of pleasure
and ambition. How I replied I know not; but I found a voice and
words to answer, even while I wept and raged to hear him.
A week ago the doctor entered my room with the marks of great exhilaration
contending with pitiful bodily weakness. ‘Asenath,’
said he, ‘I have now obtained the last ingredient. In one
week from now the perilous moment of the last projection will draw nigh.
You have once before assisted, although unconsciously, at the failure
of a similar experiment. It was the elixir which so terribly exploded
one night when you were passing my house; and it is idle to deny that
the conduct of so delicate a process, among the million jars and trepidations
of so great a city, presents a certain element of danger. From
this point of view, I cannot but regret the perfect stillness of my
house among the deserts; but, on the other hand, I have succeeded in
proving that the singularly unstable equilibrium of the elixir, at the
moment of projection, is due rather to the impurity than to the nature
of the ingredients; and as all are now of an equal and exquisite nicety,
I have little fear for the result. In a week then from to-day,
my dear Asenath, this period of trial will be ended.’ And
he smiled upon me in a manner unusually paternal.
I smiled back with my lips, but at my heart there raged the blackest
and most unbridled terror. What if he failed? And oh, tenfold
worse! what if he succeeded? What detested and unnatural changeling
would appear before me to claim my hand? And could there, I asked
myself with a dreadful sinking, be any truth in his boasts of an assured
victory over my reluctance? I knew him, indeed, to be masterful,
to lead my life at a sign. Suppose, then, this experiment to succeed;
suppose him to return to me, hideously restored, like a vampire in a
legend; and suppose that, by some devilish fascination . . . My head
turned; all former fears deserted me: and I felt I could embrace the
worst in preference to this.
My mind was instantly made up. The doctor’s presence in
London was justified by the affairs of the Mormon polity. Often,
in our conversation, he would gloat over the details of that great organisation,
which he feared even while yet he wielded it; and would remind me, that
even in the humming labyrinth of London, we were still visible to that
unsleeping eye in Utah. His visitors, indeed, who were of every
sort, from the missionary to the destroying angel, and seemed to belong
to every rank of life, had, up to that moment, filled me with unmixed
repulsion and alarm. I knew that if my secret were to reach the
ear of any leader my fate were sealed beyond redemption; and yet in
my present pass of horror and despair, it was to these very men that
I turned for help. I waylaid upon the stair one of the Mormon
missionaries, a man of a low class, but not inaccessible to pity; told
him I scarce remember what elaborate fable to explain my application;
and by his intermediacy entered into correspondence with my father’s
family. They recognised my claim for help, and on this very day
I was to begin my escape.
Last night I sat up fully dressed, awaiting the result of the doctor’s
labours, and prepared against the worst. The nights at this season
and in this northern latitude are short; and I had soon the company
of the returning daylight. The silence in and around the house
was only broken by the movements of the doctor in the laboratory; to
these I listened, watch in hand, awaiting the hour of my escape, and
yet consumed by anxiety about the strange experiment that was going
forward overhead. Indeed, now that I was conscious of some protection
for myself, my sympathies had turned more directly to the doctor’s
side; I caught myself even praying for his success; and when some hours
ago a low, peculiar cry reached my ears from the laboratory, I could
no longer control my impatience, but mounted the stairs and opened the
door.
The doctor was standing in the middle of the room; in his hand a large,
round-bellied, crystal flask, some three parts full of a bright amber-coloured
liquid; on his face a rapture of gratitude and joy unspeakable.
As he saw me he raised the flask at arm’s length. ‘Victory!’
he cried. ‘Victory, Asenath!’ And then - whether
the flask escaped his trembling fingers, or whether the explosion were
spontaneous, I cannot tell - enough that we were thrown, I against the
door-post, the doctor into the corner of the room; enough that we were
shaken to the soul by the same explosion that must have startled you
upon the street; and that, in the brief space of an indistinguishable
instant, there remained nothing of the labours of the doctor’s
lifetime but a few shards of broken crystal and those voluminous and
ill-smelling vapours that pursued me in my flight.
THE SQUIRE OF DAMES (Concluded)
What with the lady’s animated manner and dramatic conduct
of her voice, Challoner had thrilled to every incident with genuine
emotion. His fancy, which was not perhaps of a very lively character,
applauded both the matter and the style; but the more judicial functions
of his mind refused assent. It was an excellent story; and it
might be true, but he believed it was not. Miss Fonblanque was
a lady, and it was doubtless possible for a lady to wander from the
truth; but how was a gentleman to tell her so? His spirits for
some time had been sinking, but they now fell to zero; and long after
her voice had died away he still sat with a troubled and averted countenance,
and could find no form of words to thank her for her narrative.
His mind, indeed, was empty of everything beyond a dull longing for
escape. From this pause, which grew the more embarrassing with
every second, he was roused by the sudden laughter of the lady.
His vanity was alarmed; he turned and faced her; their eyes met; and
he caught from hers a spark of such frank merriment as put him instantly
at ease.
‘You certainly,’ he said, ‘appear to bear your calamities
with excellent spirit.’
‘Do I not?’ she cried, and fell once more into delicious
laughter. But from this access she more speedily recovered.
‘This is all very well,’ said she, nodding at him gravely,
‘but I am still in a most distressing situation, from which, if
you deny me your help, I shall find it difficult indeed to free myself.’
At this mention of help Challoner fell back to his original gloom.
‘My sympathies are much engaged with you,’ he said, ‘and
I should be delighted, I am sure. But our position is most unusual;
and circumstances over which I have, I can assure you, no control, deprive
me of the power - the pleasure - Unless, indeed,’ he added, somewhat
brightening at the thought, ‘I were to recommend you to the care
of the police?’
She laid her hand upon his arm and looked hard into his eyes; and he
saw with wonder that, for the first time since the moment of their meeting,
every trace of colour had faded from her cheek.
‘Do so,’ she said, ‘and - weigh my words well - you
kill me as certainly as with a knife.’
‘God bless me!’ exclaimed Challoner.
‘Oh,’ she cried, ‘I can see you disbelieve my story
and make light of the perils that surround me; but who are you to judge?
My family share my apprehensions; they help me in secret; and you saw
yourself by what an emissary, and in what a place, they have chosen
to supply me with the funds for my escape. I admit that you are
brave and clever and have impressed me most favourably; but how are
you to prefer your opinion before that of my uncle, an ex-minister of
state, a man with the ear of the Queen, and of a long political experience?
If I am mad, is he? And you must allow me, besides, a special
claim upon your help. Strange as you may think my story, you know
that much of it is true; and if you who heard the explosion and saw
the Mormon at Victoria, refuse to credit and assist me, to whom am I
to turn?’
‘He gave you money then?’ asked Challoner, who had been
dwelling singly on that fact.
‘I begin to interest you,’ she cried. ‘But,
frankly, you are condemned to help me. If the service I had to
ask of you were serious, were suspicious, were even unusual, I should
say no more. But what is it? To take a pleasure trip (for
which, if you will suffer me, I propose to pay) and to carry from one
lady to another a sum of money! What can be more simple?’
‘Is the sum,’ asked Challoner, ‘considerable?’
She produced a packet from her bosom; and observing that she had not
yet found time to make the count, tore open the cover and spread upon
her knees a considerable number of Bank of England notes. It took
some time to make the reckoning, for the notes were of every degree
of value; but at last, and counting a few loose sovereigns, she made
out the sum to be a little under £710 sterling. The sight
of so much money worked an immediate revolution in the mind of Challoner.
‘And you propose, madam,’ he cried, ‘to intrust that
money to a perfect stranger?’
‘Ah!’ said she, with a charming smile, ‘but I no longer
regard you as a stranger.’
‘Madam,’ said Challoner, ‘I perceive I must make you
a confession. Although of a very good family - through my mother,
indeed, a lineal descendant of the patriot Bruce - I dare not conceal
from you that my affairs are deeply, very deeply involved. I am
in debt; my pockets are practically empty; and, in short, I am fallen
to that state when a considerable sum of money would prove to many men
an irresistible temptation.’
‘Do you not see,’ returned the young lady, ‘that by
these words you have removed my last hesitation? Take them.’
And she thrust the notes into the young man’s hand.
He sat so long, holding them, like a baby at the font, that Miss Fonblanque
once more bubbled into laughter.
‘Pray,’ she said, ‘hesitate no further; put them in
your pocket; and to relieve our position of any shadow of embarrassment,
tell me by what name I am to address my knight-errant, for I find myself
reduced to the awkwardness of the pronoun.’
Had borrowing been in question, the wisdom of our ancestors had come
lightly to the young man’s aid; but upon what pretext could he
refuse so generous a trust? Upon none he saw, that was not unpardonably
wounding; and the bright eyes and the high spirits of his companion
had already made a breach in the rampart of Challoner’s caution.
The whole thing, he reasoned, might be a mere mystification, which it
were the height of solemn folly to resent. On the other hand,
the explosion, the interview at the public-house, and the very money
in his hands, seemed to prove beyond denial the existence of some serious
danger; and if that were so, could he desert her? There was a
choice of risks: the risk of behaving with extraordinary incivility
and unhandsomeness to a lady, and the risk of going on a fool’s
errand. The story seemed false; but then the money was undeniable.
The whole circumstances were questionable and obscure; but the lady
was charming, and had the speech and manners of society. While
he still hung in the wind, a recollection returned upon his mind with
some of the dignity of prophecy. Had he not promised Somerset
to break with the traditions of the commonplace, and to accept the first
adventure offered? Well, here was the adventure.
He thrust the money into his pocket.
‘My name is Challoner,’ said he.
‘Mr. Challoner,’ she replied, ‘you have come very
generously to my aid when all was against me. Though I am myself
a very humble person, my family commands great interest; and I do not
think you will repent this handsome action.’
Challoner flushed with pleasure.
‘I imagine that, perhaps, a consulship,’ she added, her
eyes dwelling on him with a judicial admiration, ‘a consulship
in some great town or capital - or else - But we waste time; let us
set about the work of my delivery.’
She took his arm with a frank confidence that went to his heart; and
once more laying by all serious thoughts, she entertained him, as they
crossed the park, with her agreeable gaiety of mind. Near the
Marble Arch they found a hansom, which rapidly conveyed them to the
terminus at Euston Square; and here, in the hotel, they sat down to
an excellent breakfast. The young lady’s first step was
to call for writing materials and write, upon one corner of the table,
a hasty note; still, as she did so, glancing with smiles at her companion.
‘Here,’ said she, ‘here is the letter which will introduce
you to my cousin.’ She began to fold the paper. ‘My
cousin, although I have never seen her, has the character of a very
charming woman and a recognised beauty; of that I know nothing, but
at least she has been very kind to me; so has my lord her father; so
have you - kinder than all - kinder than I can bear to think of.’
She said this with unusual emotion; and, at the same time, sealed the
envelope. ‘Ah!’ she cried, ‘I have shut my letter!
It is not quite courteous; and yet, as between friends, it is perhaps
better so. I introduce you, after all, into a family secret; and
though you and I are already old comrades, you are still unknown to
my uncle. You go then to this address, Richard Street, Glasgow;
go, please, as soon as you arrive; and give this letter with your own
hands into those of Miss Fonblanque, for that is the name by which she
is to pass. When we next meet, you will tell me what you think
of her,’ she added, with a touch of the provocative.
‘Ah,’ said Challoner, almost tenderly, ‘she can be
nothing to me.’
‘You do not know,’ replied the young lady, with a sigh.
‘By-the-bye, I had forgotten - it is very childish, and I am almost
ashamed to mention it - but when you see Miss Fonblanque, you will have
to make yourself a little ridiculous; and I am sure the part in no way
suits you. We had agreed upon a watchword. You will have
to address an earl’s daughter in these words: “Nigger,
nigger, never die;” but reassure yourself,’ she
added, laughing, ‘for the fair patrician will at once finish the
quotation. Come now, say your lesson.’
‘“Nigger, nigger, never die,”’ repeated Challoner,
with undisguised reluctance.
Miss Fonblanque went into fits of laughter. ‘Excellent,’
said she, ‘it will be the most humorous scene.’ And
she laughed again.
‘And what will be the counterword?’ asked Challoner stiffly.
‘I will not tell you till the last moment,’ said she; ‘for
I perceive you are growing too imperious.’
Breakfast over, she accompanied the young man to the platform, bought
him the Graphic, the Athenaeum, and a paper-cutter, and
stood on the step conversing till the whistle sounded. Then she
put her head into the carriage. ‘Black face and shining
eye!’ she whispered, and instantly leaped down upon the
platform, with a thrill of gay and musical laughter. As the train
steamed out of the great arch of glass, the sound of that laughter still
rang in the young man’s ears.
Challoner’s position was too unusual to be long welcome to his
mind. He found himself projected the whole length of England,
on a mission beset with obscure and ridiculous circumstances, and yet,
by the trust he had accepted, irrevocably bound to persevere.
How easy it appeared, in the retrospect, to have refused the whole proposal,
returned the money, and gone forth again upon his own affairs, a free
and happy man! And it was now impossible: the enchantress who
had held him with her eye had now disappeared, taking his honour in
pledge; and as she had failed to leave him an address, he was denied
even the inglorious safety of retreat. To use the paper-knife,
or even to read the periodicals with which she had presented him, was
to renew the bitterness of his remorse; and as he was alone in the compartment,
he passed the day staring at the landscape in impotent repentance, and
long before he was landed on the platform of St. Enoch’s, had
fallen to the lowest and coldest zones of self-contempt.
As he was hungry, and elegant in his habits, he would have preferred
to dine and to remove the stains of travel; but the words of the young
lady, and his own impatient eagerness, would suffer no delay.
In the late, luminous, and lamp-starred dusk of the summer evening,
he accordingly set forward with brisk steps.
The street to which he was directed had first seen the day in the character
of a row of small suburban villas on a hillside; but the extension of
the city had long since, and on every hand, surrounded it with miles
of streets. From the top of the hill a range of very tall buildings,
densely inhabited by the poorest classes of the population and variegated
by drying-poles from every second window, overplumbed the villas and
their little gardens like a sea-board cliff. But still, under
the grime of years of city smoke, these antiquated cottages, with their
venetian blinds and rural porticoes, retained a somewhat melancholy
savour of the past.
The street when Challoner entered it was perfectly deserted. From
hard by, indeed, the sound of a thousand footfalls filled the ear; but
in Richard Street itself there was neither light nor sound of human
habitation. The appearance of the neighbourhood weighed heavily
on the mind of the young man; once more, as in the streets of London,
he was impressed with the sense of city deserts; and as he approached
the number indicated, and somewhat falteringly rang the bell, his heart
sank within him.
The bell was ancient, like the house; it had a thin and garrulous note;
and it was some time before it ceased to sound from the rear quarters
of the building. Following upon this an inner door was stealthily
opened, and careful and catlike steps drew near along the hall.
Challoner, supposing he was to be instantly admitted, produced his letter,
and, as well as he was able, prepared a smiling face. To his indescribable
surprise, however, the footsteps ceased, and then, after a pause and
with the like stealthiness, withdrew once more, and died away in the
interior of the house. A second time the young man rang violently
at the bell; a second time, to his keen hearkening, a certain bustle
of discreet footing moved upon the hollow boards of the old villa; and
again the fainthearted garrison only drew near to retreat. The
cup of the visitor’s endurance was now full to overflowing; and,
committing the whole family of Fonblanque to every mood and shade of
condemnation, he turned upon his heel and redescended the steps.
Perhaps the mover in the house was watching from a window, and plucked
up courage at the sight of this desistance; or perhaps, where he lurked
trembling in the back parts of the villa, reason in its own right had
conquered his alarms. Challoner, at least, had scarce set foot
upon the pavement when he was arrested by the sound of the withdrawal
of an inner bolt; one followed another, rattling in their sockets; the
key turned harshly in the lock; the door opened; and there appeared
upon the threshold a man of a very stalwart figure in his shirt sleeves.
He was a person neither of great manly beauty nor of a refined exterior;
he was not the man, in ordinary moods, to attract the eyes of the observer;
but as he now stood in the doorway, he was marked so legibly with the
extreme passion of terror that Challoner stood wonder-struck.
For a fraction of a minute they gazed upon each other in silence; and
then the man of the house, with ashen lips and gasping voice, inquired
the business of his visitor. Challoner replied, in tones from
which he strove to banish his surprise, that he was the bearer of a
letter to a certain Miss Fonblanque. At this name, as at a talisman,
the man fell back and impatiently invited him to enter; and no sooner
had the adventurer crossed the threshold, than the door was closed behind
him and his retreat cut off.
It was already long past eight at night; and though the late twilight
of the north still lingered in the streets, in the passage it was already
groping dark. The man led Challoner directly to a parlour looking
on the garden to the back. Here he had apparently been supping;
for by the light of a tallow dip the table was seen to be covered with
a napkin, and set out with a quart of bottled ale and the heel of a
Gouda cheese. The room, on the other hand, was furnished with
faded solidity, and the walls were lined with scholarly and costly volumes
in glazed cases. The house must have been taken furnished; for
it had no congruity with this man of the shirt sleeves and the mean
supper. As for the earl’s daughter, the earl and the visionary
consulships in foreign cities, they had long ago begun to fade in Challoner’s
imagination. Like Doctor Grierson and the Mormon angels, they
were plainly woven of the stuff of dreams. Not an illusion remained
to the knight-errant; not a hope was left him, but to be speedily relieved
from this disreputable business.
The man had continued to regard his visitor with undisguised anxiety,
and began once more to press him for his errand.
‘I am here,’ said Challoner, ‘simply to do a service
between two ladies; and I must ask you, without further delay, to summon
Miss Fonblanque, into whose hands alone I am authorised to deliver the
letter that I bear.’
A growing wonder began to mingle on the man’s face with the lines
of solicitude. ‘I am Miss Fonblanque,’ he said; and
then, perceiving the effect of this communication, ‘Good God!’
he cried, ‘what are you staring at? I tell you, I am Miss
Fonblanque.’
Seeing the speaker wore a chin-beard of considerable length, and the
remainder of his face was blue with shaving, Challoner could only suppose
himself the subject of a jest. He was no longer under the spell
of the young lady’s presence; and with men, and above all with
his inferiors, he was capable of some display of spirit.
‘Sir,’ said he, pretty roundly, ‘I have put myself
to great inconvenience for persons of whom I know too little, and I
begin to be weary of the business. Either you shall immediately
summon Miss Fonblanque, or I leave this house and put myself under the
direction of the police.’
‘This is horrible!’ exclaimed the man. ‘I declare
before Heaven I am the person meant, but how shall I convince you?
It must have been Clara, I perceive, that sent you on this errand -
a madwoman, who jests with the most deadly interests; and here we are
incapable, perhaps, of an agreement, and Heaven knows what may depend
on our delay!’
He spoke with a really startling earnestness; and at the same time there
flashed upon the mind of Challoner the ridiculous jingle which was to
serve as password. ‘This may, perhaps, assist you,’
he said, and then, with some embarrassment, ‘“Nigger, nigger,
never die.”’
A light of relief broke upon the troubled countenance of the man with
the chin-beard. ‘“Black face and shining eye”
- give me the letter,’ he panted, in one gasp.
‘Well,’ said Challoner, though still with some reluctance,
‘I suppose I must regard you as the proper recipient; and though
I may justly complain of the spirit in which I have been treated, I
am only too glad to be done with all responsibility. Here it is,’
and he produced the envelope.
The man leaped upon it like a beast, and with hands that trembled in
a manner painful to behold, tore it open and unfolded the letter.
As he read, terror seemed to mount upon him to the pitch of nightmare.
He struck one hand upon his brow, while with the other, as if unconsciously,
he crumpled the paper to a ball. ‘My gracious powers!’
he cried; and then, dashing to the window, which stood open on the garden,
he clapped forth his head and shoulders, and whistled long and shrill.
Challoner fell back into a corner, and resolutely grasping his staff,
prepared for the most desperate events; but the thoughts of the man
with the chin-beard were far removed from violence. Turning again
into the room, and once more beholding his visitor, whom he appeared
to have forgotten, he fairly danced with trepidation. ‘Impossible!’
he cried. ‘Oh, quite impossible! O Lord, I have lost
my head.’ And then, once more striking his hand upon his
brow, ‘The money!’ he exclaimed. ‘Give me the
money.’
‘My good friend,’ replied Challoner, ‘this is a very
painful exhibition; and until I see you reasonably master of yourself,
I decline to proceed with any business.’
‘You are quite right,’ said the man. ‘I am of
a very nervous habit; a long course of the dumb ague has undermined
my constitution. But I know you have money; it may be still the
saving of me; and oh, dear young gentleman, in pity’s name be
expeditious!’ Challoner, sincerely uneasy as he was, could
scarce refrain from laughter; but he was himself in a hurry to be gone,
and without more delay produced the money. ‘You will find
the sum, I trust, correct,’ he observed ‘and let me ask
you to give me a receipt.’
But the man heeded him not. He seized the money, and disregarding
the sovereigns that rolled loose upon the floor, thrust the bundle of
notes into his pocket.
‘A receipt,’ repeated Challoner, with some asperity.
‘I insist on a receipt.’
‘Receipt?’ repeated the man, a little wildly. ‘A
receipt? Immediately! Await me here.’
Challoner, in reply, begged the gentleman to lose no unnecessary time,
as he was himself desirous of catching a particular train.
‘Ah, by God, and so am I!’ exclaimed the man with the chin-beard;
and with that he was gone out of the room, and had rattled upstairs,
four at a time, to the upper story of the villa.
‘This is certainly a most amazing business,’ thought Challoner;
‘certainly a most disquieting affair; and I cannot conceal from
myself that I have become mixed up with either lunatics or malefactors.
I may truly thank my stars that I am so nearly and so creditably done
with it.’ Thus thinking, and perhaps remembering the episode
of the whistle, he turned to the open window. The garden was still
faintly clear; he could distinguish the stairs and terraces with which
the small domain had been adorned by former owners, and the blackened
bushes and dead trees that had once afforded shelter to the country
birds; beyond these he saw the strong retaining wall, some thirty feet
in height, which enclosed the garden to the back; and again above that,
the pile of dingy buildings rearing its frontage high into the night.
A peculiar object lying stretched upon the lawn for some time baffled
his eyesight; but at length he had made it out to be a long ladder,
or series of ladders bound into one; and he was still wondering of what
service so great an instrument could be in such a scant enclosure, when
he was recalled to himself by the noise of some one running violently
down the stairs. This was followed by the sudden, clamorous banging
of the house door; and that again, by rapid and retreating footsteps
in the street.
Challoner sprang into the passage. He ran from room to room, upstairs
and downstairs; and in that old dingy and worm-eaten house, he found
himself alone. Only in one apartment, looking to the front, were
there any traces of the late inhabitant: a bed that had been recently
slept in and not made, a chest of drawers disordered by a hasty search,
and on the floor a roll of crumpled paper. This he picked up.
The light in this upper story looking to the front was considerably
brighter than in the parlour; and he was able to make out that the paper
bore the mark of the hotel at Euston, and even, by peering closely,
to decipher the following lines in a very elegant and careful female
hand:
‘DEAR M’GUIRE, - It is certain your retreat is known.
We have just had another failure, clockwork thirty hours too soon, with
the usual humiliating result. Zero is quite disheartened.
We are all scattered, and I could find no one but the solemn ass
who brings you this and the money. I would love to see your meeting.
- Ever yours,
SHINING EYE.’
Challoner was stricken to the heart. He perceived by what facility,
by what unmanly fear of ridicule, he had been brought down to be the
gull of this intriguer; and his wrath flowed forth in almost equal measure
against himself, against the woman, and against Somerset, whose idle
counsels had impelled him to embark on that adventure. At the
same time a great and troubled curiosity, and a certain chill of fear,
possessed his spirit. The conduct of the man with the chin-beard,
the terms of the letter, and the explosion of the early morning, fitted
together like parts in some obscure and mischievous imbroglio.
Evil was certainly afoot; evil, secrecy, terror, and falsehood were
the conditions and the passions of the people among whom he had begun
to move, like a blind puppet; and he who began as a puppet, his experience
told him, was often doomed to perish as a victim.
From the stupor of deep thought into which he had glided with the letter
in his hand, he was awakened by the clatter of the bell. He glanced
from the window; and, conceive his horror and surprise when he beheld,
clustered on the steps, in the front garden and on the pavement of the
street, a formidable posse of police! He started to the full possession
of his powers and courage. Escape, and escape at any cost, was
the one idea that possessed him. Swiftly and silently he redescended
the creaking stairs; he was already in the passage when a second and
more imperious summons from the door awoke the echoes of the empty house;
nor had the bell ceased to jangle before he had bestridden the window-sill
of the parlour and was lowering himself into the garden. His coat
was hooked upon the iron flower-basket; for a moment he hung dependent
heels and head below; and then, with the noise of rending cloth, and
followed by several pots, he dropped upon the sod. Once more the
bell was rung, and now with furious and repeated peals. The desperate
Challoner turned his eyes on every side. They fell upon the ladder,
and he ran to it, and with strenuous but unavailing effort sought to
raise it from the ground. Suddenly the weight, which was thus
resisting his whole strength, began to lighten in his hands; the ladder,
like a thing of life, reared its bulk from off the sod; and Challoner,
leaping back with a cry of almost superstitious terror, beheld the whole
structure mount, foot by foot, against the face of the retaining wall.
At the same time, two heads were dimly visible above the parapet, and
he was hailed by a guarded whistle. Something in its modulation
recalled, like an echo, the whistle of the man with the chin-beard,
Had he chanced upon a means of escape prepared beforehand by those very
miscreants whose messenger and gull he had become? Was this, indeed,
a means of safety, or but the starting-point of further complication
and disaster? He paused not to reflect. Scarce was the ladder
reared to its full length than he had sprung already on the rounds;
hand over hand, swift as an ape, he scaled the tottering stairway.
Strong arms received, embraced, and helped him; he was lifted and set
once more upon the earth; and with the spasm of his alarm yet unsubsided,
found himself in the company of two rough-looking men, in the paved
back yard of one of the tall houses that crowned the summit of the hill.
Meanwhile, from below, the note of the bell had been succeeded by the
sound of vigorous and redoubling blows.
‘Are you all out?’ asked one of his companions; and, as
soon as he had babbled an answer in the affirmative, the rope was cut
from the top round, and the ladder thrust roughly back into the garden,
where it fell and broke with clattering reverberations. Its fall
was hailed with many broken cries; for the whole of Richard Street was
now in high emotion, the people crowding to the windows or clambering
on the garden walls. The same man who had already addressed Challoner
seized him by the arm; whisked him through the basement of the house
and across the street upon the other side; and before the unfortunate
adventurer had time to realise his situation, a door was opened, and
he was thrust into a low and dark compartment.
‘Bedad,’ observed his guide, ‘there was no time to
lose. Is M’Guire gone, or was it you that whistled?
‘M’Guire is gone,’ said Challoner.
The guide now struck a light. ‘Ah,’ said he, ‘this
will never do. You dare not go upon the streets in such a figure.
Wait quietly here and I will bring you something decent.’
With that the man was gone, and Challoner, his attention thus rudely
awakened, began ruefully to consider the havoc that had been worked
in his attire. His hat was gone; his trousers were cruelly ripped;
and the best part of one tail of his very elegant frockcoat had been
left hanging from the iron crockets of the window. He had scarce
had time to measure these disasters when his host re-entered the apartment
and proceeded, without a word, to envelop the refined and urbane Challoner
in a long ulster of the cheapest material, and of a pattern so gross
and vulgar that his spirit sickened at the sight. This calumnious
disguise was crowned and completed by a soft felt hat of the Tyrolese
design, and several sizes too small. At another moment Challoner
would simply have refused to issue forth upon the world thus travestied;
but the desire to escape from Glasgow was now too strongly and too exclusively
impressed upon his mind. With one haggard glance at the spotted
tails of his new coat, he inquired what was to pay for this accoutrement.
The man assured him that the whole expense was easily met from funds
in his possession, and begged him, instead of wasting time, to make
his best speed out of the neighbourhood.
The young man was not loath to take the hint. True to his usual
courtesy, he thanked the speaker and complimented him upon his taste
in greatcoats; and leaving the man somewhat abashed by these remarks
and the manner of their delivery, he hurried forth into the lamplit
city. The last train was gone ere, after many deviations, he had
reached the terminus. Attired as he was he dared not present himself
at any reputable inn; and he felt keenly that the unassuming dignity
of his demeanour would serve to attract attention, perhaps mirth and
possibly suspicion, in any humbler hostelry. He was thus condemned
to pass the solemn and uneventful hours of a whole night in pacing the
streets of Glasgow; supperless; a figure of fun for all beholders; waiting
the dawn, with hope indeed, but with unconquerable shrinkings; and above
all things, filled with a profound sense of the folly and weakness of
his conduct. It may be conceived with what curses he assailed
the memory of the fair narrator of Hyde Park; her parting laughter rang
in his ears all night with damning mockery and iteration; and when he
could spare a thought from this chief artificer of his confusion, it
was to expend his wrath on Somerset and the career of the amateur detective.
With the coming of day, he found in a shy milk-shop the means to appease
his hunger. There were still many hours to wait before the departure
of the South express; these he passed wandering with indescribable fatigue
in the obscurer by-streets of the city; and at length slipped quietly
into the station and took his place in the darkest corner of a third-class
carriage. Here, all day long, he jolted on the bare boards, distressed
by heat and continually reawakened from uneasy slumbers. By the
half return ticket in his purse, he was entitled to make the journey
on the easy cushions and with the ample space of the first-class; but
alas! in his absurd attire, he durst not, for decency, commingle with
his equals; and this small annoyance, coming last in such a series of
disasters, cut him to the heart.
That night, when, in his Putney lodging, he reviewed the expense, anxiety,
and weariness of his adventure; when he beheld the ruins of his last
good trousers and his last presentable coat; and above all, when his
eye by any chance alighted on the Tyrolese hat or the degrading ulster,
his heart would overflow with bitterness, and it was only by a serious
call on his philosophy that he maintained the dignity of his demeanour.
SOMERSET’S ADVENTURE: THE SUPERFLUOUS MANSION
Mr. Paul Somerset was a young gentleman of a lively and fiery imagination,
with very small capacity for action. He was one who lived exclusively
in dreams and in the future: the creature of his own theories, and an
actor in his own romances. From the cigar divan he proceeded to
parade the streets, still heated with the fire of his eloquence, and
scouting upon every side for the offer of some fortunate adventure.
In the continual stream of passers-by, on the sealed fronts of houses,
on the posters that covered the hoardings, and in every lineament and
throb of the great city, he saw a mysterious and hopeful hieroglyph.
But although the elements of adventure were streaming by him as thick
as drops of water in the Thames, it was in vain that, now with a beseeching,
now with something of a braggadocio air, he courted and provoked the
notice of the passengers; in vain that, putting fortune to the touch,
he even thrust himself into the way and came into direct collision with
those of the more promising demeanour. Persons brimful of secrets,
persons pining for affection, persons perishing for lack of help or
counsel, he was sure he could perceive on every side; but by some contrariety
of fortune, each passed upon his way without remarking the young gentleman,
and went farther (surely to fare worse!) in quest of the confidant,
the friend, or the adviser. To thousands he must have turned an
appealing countenance, and yet not one regarded him.
A light dinner, eaten to the accompaniment of his impetuous aspirations,
broke in upon the series of his attempts on fortune; and when he returned
to the task, the lamps were already lighted, and the nocturnal crowd
was dense upon the pavement. Before a certain restaurant, whose
name will readily occur to any student of our Babylon, people were already
packed so closely that passage had grown difficult; and Somerset, standing
in the kennel, watched, with a hope that was beginning to grow somewhat
weary, the faces and the manners of the crowd. Suddenly he was
startled by a gentle touch upon the shoulder, and facing about, he was
aware of a very plain and elegant brougham, drawn by a pair of powerful
horses, and driven by a man in sober livery. There were no arms
upon the panel; the window was open, but the interior was obscure; the
driver yawned behind his palm; and the young man was already beginning
to suppose himself the dupe of his own fancy, when a hand, no larger
than a child’s and smoothly gloved in white, appeared in a corner
of the window and privily beckoned him to approach. He did so,
and looked in. The carriage was occupied by a single small and
very dainty figure, swathed head and shoulders in impenetrable folds
of white lace; and a voice, speaking low and silvery, addressed him
in these words -
‘Open the door and get in.’
‘It must be,’ thought the young man with an almost unbearable
thrill, ‘it must be that duchess at last!’ Yet, although
the moment was one to which he had long looked forward, it was with
a certain share of alarm that he opened the door, and, mounting into
the brougham, took his seat beside the lady of the lace. Whether
or no she had touched a spring, or given some other signal, the young
man had hardly closed the door before the carriage, with considerable
swiftness, and with a very luxurious and easy movement on its springs,
turned and began to drive towards the west.
Somerset, as I have written, was not unprepared; it had long been his
particular pleasure to rehearse his conduct in the most unlikely situations;
and this, among others, of the patrician ravisher, was one he had familiarly
studied. Strange as it may seem, however, he could find no apposite
remark; and as the lady, on her side, vouchsafed no further sign, they
continued to drive in silence through the streets. Except for
alternate flashes from the passing lamps, the carriage was plunged in
obscurity; and beyond the fact that the fittings were luxurious, and
that the lady was singularly small and slender in person, and, all but
one gloved hand, still swathed in her costly veil, the young man could
decipher no detail of an inspiring nature. The suspense began
to grow unbearable. Twice he cleared his throat, and twice the
whole resources of the language failed him. In similar scenes,
when he had forecast them on the theatre of fancy, his presence of mind
had always been complete, his eloquence remarkable; and at this disparity
between the rehearsal and the performance, he began to be seized with
a panic of apprehension. Here, on the very threshold of adventure,
suppose him ignominiously to fail; suppose that after ten, twenty, or
sixty seconds of still uninterrupted silence, the lady should touch
the check-string and re-deposit him, weighed and found wanting, on the
common street! Thousands of persons of no mind at all, he reasoned,
would be found more equal to the part; could, that very instant, by
some decisive step, prove the lady’s choice to have been well
inspired, and put a stop to this intolerable silence.
His eye, at this point, lighted on the hand. It was better to
fall by desperate councils than to continue as he was; and with one
tremulous swoop he pounced on the gloved fingers and drew them to himself.
One overt step, it had appeared to him, would dissolve the spell of
his embarrassment; in act, he found it otherwise: he found himself no
less incapable of speech or further progress; and with the lady’s
hand in his, sat helpless. But worse was in store. A peculiar
quivering began to agitate the form of his companion; the hand that
lay unresistingly in Somerset’s trembled as with ague; and presently
there broke forth, in the shadow of the carriage, the bubbling and musical
sound of laughter, resisted but triumphant. The young man dropped
his prize; had it been possible, he would have bounded from the carriage.
The lady, meanwhile, lying back upon the cushions, passed on from trill
to trill of the most heartfelt, high-pitched, clear and fairy-sounding
merriment.
‘You must not be offended,’ she said at last, catching an
opportunity between two paroxysms. ‘If you have been mistaken
in the warmth of your attentions, the fault is solely mine; it does
not flow from your presumption, but from my eccentric manner of recruiting
friends; and, believe me, I am the last person in the world to think
the worse of a young man for showing spirit. As for to-night,
it is my intention to entertain you to a little supper; and if I shall
continue to be as much pleased with your manners as I was taken with
your face, I may perhaps end by making you an advantageous offer.’
Somerset sought in vain to find some form of answer, but his discomfiture
had been too recent and complete.
‘Come,’ returned the lady, ‘we must have no display
of temper; that is for me the one disqualifying fault; and as I perceive
we are drawing near our destination, I shall ask you to descend and
offer me your arm.’
Indeed, at that very moment the carriage drew up before a stately and
severe mansion in a spacious square; and Somerset, who was possessed
of an excellent temper, with the best grace in the world assisted the
lady to alight. The door was opened by an old woman of a grim
appearance, who ushered the pair into a dining-room somewhat dimly lighted,
but already laid for supper, and occupied by a prodigious company of
large and valuable cats. Here, as soon as they were alone, the
lady divested herself of the lace in which she was enfolded; and Somerset
was relieved to find, that although still bearing the traces of great
beauty, and still distinguished by the fire and colour of her eye, her
hair was of a silvery whiteness and her face lined with years.
‘And now, mon preux,’ said the old lady, nodding
at him with a quaint gaiety, ‘you perceive that I am no longer
in my first youth. You will soon find that I am all the better
company for that.’
As she spoke, the maid re-entered the apartment with a light but tasteful
supper. They sat down, accordingly, to table, the cats with savage
pantomime surrounding the old lady’s chair; and what with the
excellence of the meal and the gaiety of his entertainer, Somerset was
soon completely at his ease. When they had well eaten and drunk,
the old lady leaned back in her chair, and taking a cat upon her lap,
subjected her guest to a prolonged but evidently mirthful scrutiny.
‘I fear, madam,’ said Somerset, ‘that my manners have
not risen to the height of your preconceived opinion.’
‘My dear young man,’ she replied, ‘you were never
more mistaken in your life. I find you charming, and you may very
well have lighted on a fairy godmother. I am not one of those
who are given to change their opinions, and short of substantial demerit,
those who have once gained my favour continue to enjoy it; but I have
a singular swiftness of decision, read my fellow men and women with
a glance, and have acted throughout life on first impressions.
Yours, as I tell you, has been favourable; and if, as I suppose, you
are a young fellow of somewhat idle habits, I think it not improbable
that we may strike a bargain.’
‘Ah, madam,’ returned Somerset, ‘you have divined
my situation. I am a man of birth, parts, and breeding; excellent
company, or at least so I find myself; but by a peculiar iniquity of
fate, destitute alike of trade or money. I was, indeed, this evening
upon the quest of an adventure, resolved to close with any offer of
interest, emolument, or pleasure; and your summons, which I profess
I am still at some loss to understand, jumped naturally with the inclination
of my mind. Call it, if you will, impudence; I am here, at least,
prepared for any proposition you can find it in your heart to make,
and resolutely determined to accept.’
‘You express yourself very well,’ replied the old lady,
‘and are certainly a droll and curious young man. I should
not care to affirm that you were sane, for I have never found any one
entirely so besides myself; but at least the nature of your madness
entertains me, and I will reward you with some description of my character
and life.’
Thereupon the old lady, still fondling the cat upon her lap, proceeded
to narrate the following particulars.
NARRATIVE OF THE SPIRITED OLD LADY
I was the eldest daughter of the Reverend Bernard Fanshawe, who
held a valuable living in the diocese of Bath and Wells. Our family,
a very large one, was noted for a sprightly and incisive wit, and came
of a good old stock where beauty was an heirloom. In Christian
grace of character we were unhappily deficient. From my earliest
years I saw and deplored the defects of those relatives whose age and
position should have enabled them to conquer my esteem; and while I
was yet a child, my father married a second wife, in whom (strange to
say) the Fanshawe failings were exaggerated to a monstrous and almost
laughable degree. Whatever may be said against me, it cannot be
denied I was a pattern daughter; but it was in vain that, with the most
touching patience, I submitted to my stepmother’s demands; and
from the hour she entered my father’s house, I may say that I
met with nothing but injustice and ingratitude.
I stood not alone, however, in the sweetness of my disposition; for
one other of the family besides myself was free from any violence of
character. Before I had reached the age of sixteen, this cousin,
John by name, had conceived for me a sincere but silent passion; and
although the poor lad was too timid to hint at the nature of his feelings,
I had soon divined and begun to share them. For some days I pondered
on the odd situation created for me by the bashfulness of my admirer;
and at length, perceiving that he began, in his distress, rather to
avoid than seek my company, I determined to take the matter into my
own hands. Finding him alone in a retired part of the rectory
garden, I told him that I had divined his amiable secret, that I knew
with what disfavour our union was sure to be regarded; and that, under
the circumstances, I was prepared to flee with him at once. Poor
John was literally paralysed with joy; such was the force of his emotions,
that he could find no words in which to thank me; and that I, seeing
him thus helpless, was obliged to arrange, myself, the details of our
flight, and of the stolen marriage which was immediately to crown it.
John had been at that time projecting a visit to the metropolis.
In this I bade him persevere, and promised on the following day to join
him at the Tavistock Hotel.
True, on my side, to every detail of our arrangement, I arose, on the
day in question, before the servants, packed a few necessaries in a
bag, took with me the little money I possessed, and bade farewell for
ever to the rectory. I walked with good spirits to a town some
thirty miles from home, and was set down the next morning in this great
city of London. As I walked from the coach-office to the hotel,
I could not help exulting in the pleasant change that had befallen me;
beholding, meanwhile, with innocent delight, the traffic of the streets,
and depicting, in all the colours of fancy, the reception that awaited
me from John. But alas! when I inquired for Mr. Fanshawe, the
porter assured me there was no such gentleman among the guests.
By what channel our secret had leaked out, or what pressure had been
brought to bear on the too facile John, I could never fathom.
Enough that my family had triumphed; that I found myself alone in London,
tender in years, smarting under the most sensible mortification, and
by every sentiment of pride and self-respect debarred for ever from
my father’s house.
I rose under the blow, and found lodgings in the neighbourhood of Euston
Road, where, for the first time in my life, I tasted the joys of independence.
Three days afterwards, an advertisement in the Times directed
me to the office of a solicitor whom I knew to be in my father’s
confidence. There I was given the promise of a very moderate allowance,
and a distinct intimation that I must never look to be received at home.
I could not but resent so cruel a desertion, and I told the lawyer it
was a meeting I desired as little as themselves. He smiled at
my courageous spirit, paid me the first quarter of my income, and gave
me the remainder of my personal effects, which had been sent to me,
under his care, in a couple of rather ponderous boxes. With these
I returned in triumph to my lodgings, more content with my position
than I should have thought possible a week before, and fully determined
to make the best of the future.
All went well for several months; and, indeed, it was my own fault alone
that ended this pleasant and secluded episode of life. I have,
I must confess, the fatal trick of spoiling my inferiors. My landlady,
to whom I had as usual been overkind, impertinently called me in fault
for some particular too small to mention; and I, annoyed that I had
allowed her the freedom upon which she thus presumed, ordered her to
leave my presence. She stood a moment dumb, and then, recalling
her self-possession, ‘Your bill,’ said she, ‘shall
be ready this evening, and to-morrow, madam, you shall leave my house.
See,’ she added, ‘that you are able to pay what you owe
me; for if I do not receive the uttermost farthing, no box of yours
shall pass my threshold.’
I was confounded at her audacity, but as a whole quarter’s income
was due to me, not otherwise affected by the threat. That afternoon,
as I left the solicitor’s door, carrying in one hand, and done
up in a paper parcel, the whole amount of my fortune, there befell me
one of those decisive incidents that sometimes shape a life. The
lawyer’s office was situate in a street that opened at the upper
end upon the Strand, and was closed at the lower, at the time of which
I speak, by a row of iron railings looking on the Thames. Down
this street, then, I beheld my stepmother advancing to meet me, and
doubtless bound to the very house I had just left. She was attended
by a maid whose face was new to me, but her own was too clearly printed
on my memory; and the sight of it, even from a distance, filled me with
generous indignation. Flight was impossible. There was nothing
left but to retreat against the railing, and with my back turned to
the street, pretend to be admiring the barges on the river or the chimneys
of transpontine London.
I was still so standing, and had not yet fully mastered the turbulence
of my emotions, when a voice at my elbow addressed me with a trivial
question. It was the maid whom my stepmother, with characteristic
hardness, had left to await her on the street, while she transacted
her business with the family solicitor. The girl did not know
who I was; the opportunity too golden to be lost; and I was soon hearing
the latest news of my father’s rectory and parish. It did
not surprise me to find that she detested her employers; and yet the
terms in which she spoke of them were hard to bear, hard to let pass
unchallenged. I heard them, however, without dissent, for my self-command
is wonderful; and we might have parted as we met, had she not proceeded,
in an evil hour, to criticise the rector’s missing daughter, and
with the most shocking perversions, to narrate the story of her flight.
My nature is so essentially generous that I can never pause to reason.
I flung up my hand sharply, by way, as well as I remember, of indignant
protest; and, in the act, the packet slipped from my fingers, glanced
between the railings, and fell and sunk in the river. I stood
a moment petrified, and then, struck by the drollery of the incident,
gave way to peals of laughter. I was still laughing when my stepmother
reappeared, and the maid, who doubtless considered me insane, ran off
to join her; nor had I yet recovered my gravity when I presented myself
before the lawyer to solicit a fresh advance. His answer made
me serious enough, for it was a flat refusal; and it was not until I
had besought him even with tears, that he consented to lend me ten pounds
from his own pocket. ‘I am a poor man,’ said he, ‘and
you must look for nothing farther at my hands.’
The landlady met me at the door. ‘Here, madam,’ said
she, with a curtsey insolently low, ‘here is my bill. Would
it inconvenience you to settle it at once?’
‘You shall be paid, madam,’ said I, ‘in the morning,
in the proper course.’ And I took the paper with a very
high air, but inwardly quaking.
I had no sooner looked at it than I perceived myself to be lost.
I had been short of money and had allowed my debt to mount; and it had
now reached the sum, which I shall never forget, of twelve pounds thirteen
and fourpence halfpenny. All evening I sat by the fire considering
my situation. I could not pay the bill; my landlady would not
suffer me to remove my boxes; and without either baggage or money, how
was I to find another lodging? For three months, unless I could
invent some remedy, I was condemned to be without a roof and without
a penny. It can surprise no one that I decided on immediate flight;
but even here I was confronted by a difficulty, for I had no sooner
packed my boxes than I found I was not strong enough to move, far less
to carry them.
In this strait I did not hesitate a moment, but throwing on a shawl
and bonnet, and covering my face with a thick veil, I betook myself
to that great bazaar of dangerous and smiling chances, the pavement
of the city. It was already late at night, and the weather being
wet and windy, there were few abroad besides policemen. These,
on my present mission, I had wit enough to know for enemies; and wherever
I perceived their moving lanterns, I made haste to turn aside and choose
another thoroughfare. A few miserable women still walked the pavement;
here and there were young fellows returning drunk, or ruffians of the
lowest class lurking in the mouths of alleys; but of any one to whom
I might appeal in my distress, I began almost to despair.
At last, at the corner of a street, I ran into the arms of one who was
evidently a gentleman, and who, in all his appointments, from his furred
great-coat to the fine cigar which he was smoking, comfortably breathed
of wealth. Much as my face has changed from its original beauty,
I still retain (or so I tell myself) some traces of the youthful lightness
of my figure. Even veiled as I then was, I could perceive the
gentleman was struck by my appearance: and this emboldened me for my
adventure.
‘Sir,’ said I, with a quickly beating heart, ‘sir,
are you one in whom a lady can confide?’
‘Why, my dear,’ said he, removing his cigar, ‘that
depends on circumstances. If you will raise your veil - ’
‘Sir,’ I interrupted, ‘let there be no mistake.
I ask you, as a gentleman, to serve me, but I offer no reward.’
‘That is frank,’ said he; ‘but hardly tempting.
And what, may I inquire, is the nature of the service?’
But I knew well enough it was not my interest to tell him on so short
an interview. ‘If you will accompany me,’ said I,
‘to a house not far from here, you can see for yourself.’
He looked at me awhile with hesitating eyes; and then, tossing away
his cigar, which was not yet a quarter smoked, ‘Here goes!’
said he, and with perfect politeness offered me his arm. I was
wise enough to take it; to prolong our walk as far as possible, by more
than one excursion from the shortest line; and to beguile the way with
that sort of conversation which should prove to him indubitably from
what station in society I sprang. By the time we reached the door
of my lodging, I felt sure I had confirmed his interest, and might venture,
before I turned the pass-key, to beseech him to moderate his voice and
to tread softly. He promised to obey me: and I admitted him into
the passage and thence into my sitting-room, which was fortunately next
the door.
‘And now,’ said he, when with trembling fingers I had lighted
a candle, ‘what is the meaning of all this?’
‘I wish you,’ said I, speaking with great difficulty, ‘to
help me out with these boxes - and I wish nobody to know.’
He took up the candle. ‘And I wish to see your face,’
said he.
I turned back my veil without a word, and looked at him with every appearance
of resolve that I could summon up. For some time he gazed into
my face, still holding up the candle. ‘Well,’ said
he at last, ‘and where do you wish them taken?’
I knew that I had gained my point; and it was with a tremor in my voice
that I replied. ‘I had thought we might carry them between
us to the corner of Euston Road,’ said I, ‘where, even at
this late hour, we may still find a cab.’
‘Very good,’ was his reply; and he immediately hoisted the
heavier of my trunks upon his shoulder, and taking one handle of the
second, signed to me to help him at the other end. In this order
we made good our retreat from the house, and without the least adventure,
drew pretty near to the corner of Euston Road. Before a house,
where there was a light still burning, my companion paused. ‘Let
us here,’ said he, ‘set down our boxes, while we go forward
to the end of the street in quest of a cab. By doing so, we can
still keep an eye upon their safety, and we avoid the very extraordinary
figure we should otherwise present - a young man, a young lady, and
a mass of baggage, standing castaway at midnight on the streets of London.’
So it was done, and the event proved him to be wise; for long before
there was any word of a cab, a policeman appeared upon the scene, turned
upon us the full glare of his lantern, and hung suspiciously behind
us in a doorway.
‘There seem to be no cabs about, policeman,’ said my champion,
with affected cheerfulness. But the constable’s answer was
ungracious; and as for the offer of a cigar, with which this rebuff
was most unwisely followed up, he refused it point-blank, and without
the least civility. The young gentleman looked at me with a warning
grimace, and there we continued to stand, on the edge of the pavement,
in the beating rain, and with the policeman still silently watching
our movements from the doorway.
At last, and after a delay that seemed interminable, a four-wheeler
appeared lumbering along in the mud, and was instantly hailed by my
companion. ‘Just pull up here, will you?’ he cried.
‘We have some baggage up the street.’
And now came the hitch of our adventure; for when the policeman, still
closely following us, beheld my two boxes lying in the rain, he arose
from mere suspicion to a kind of certitude of something evil.
The light in the house had been extinguished; the whole frontage of
the street was dark; there was nothing to explain the presence of these
unguarded trunks; and no two innocent people were ever, I believe, detected
in such questionable circumstances.
‘Where have these things come from?’ asked the policeman,
flashing his light full into my champion’s face.
‘Why, from that house, of course,’ replied the young gentleman,
hastily shouldering a trunk.
The policeman whistled and turned to look at the dark windows; he then
took a step towards the door, as though to knock, a course which had
infallibly proved our ruin; but seeing us already hurrying down the
street under our double burthen, thought better or worse of it, and
followed in our wake.
‘For God’s sake,’ whispered my companion, ‘tell
me where to drive to.’
‘Anywhere,’ I replied with anguish. ‘I have
no idea. Anywhere you like.’
Thus it befell that, when the boxes had been stowed, and I had already
entered the cab, my deliverer called out in clear tones the address
of the house in which we are now seated. The policeman, I could
see, was staggered. This neighbourhood, so retired, so aristocratic,
was far from what he had expected. For all that, he took the number
of the cab, and spoke for a few seconds and with a decided manner in
the cabman’s ear.
‘What can he have said?’ I gasped, as soon as the cab had
rolled away.
‘I can very well imagine,’ replied my champion; ‘and
I can assure you that you are now condemned to go where I have said;
for, should we attempt to change our destination by the way, the jarvey
will drive us straight to a police-office. Let me compliment you
on your nerves,’ he added. ‘I have had, I believe,
the most horrible fright of my existence.’
But my nerves, which he so much misjudged, were in so strange a disarray
that speech was now become impossible; and we made the drive thenceforward
in unbroken silence. When we arrived before the door of our destination,
the young gentleman alighted, opened it with a pass-key like one who
was at home, bade the driver carry the trunks into the hall, and dismissed
him with a handsome fee. He then led me into this dining-room,
looking nearly as you behold it, but with certain marks of bachelor
occupancy, and hastened to pour out a glass of wine, which he insisted
on my drinking. As soon as I could find my voice, ‘In God’s
name,’ I cried, ‘where am I?’
He told me I was in his house, where I was very welcome, and had no
more urgent business than to rest myself and recover my spirits.
As he spoke he offered me another glass of wine, of which, indeed, I
stood in great want, for I was faint, and inclined to be hysterical.
Then he sat down beside the fire, lit another cigar, and for some time
observed me curiously in silence.
‘And now,’ said he, ‘that you have somewhat restored
yourself, will you be kind enough to tell me in what sort of crime I
have become a partner? Are you murderer, smuggler, thief, or only
the harmless and domestic moonlight flitter?’
I had been already shocked by his lighting a cigar without permission,
for I had not forgotten the one he threw away on our first meeting;
and now, at these explicit insults, I resolved at once to reconquer
his esteem. The judgment of the world I have consistently despised,
but I had already begun to set a certain value on the good opinion of
my entertainer. Beginning with a note of pathos, but soon brightening
into my habitual vivacity and humour, I rapidly narrated the circumstances
of my birth, my flight, and subsequent misfortunes. He heard me
to an end in silence, gravely smoking. ‘Miss Fanshawe,’
said he, when I had done, ‘you are a very comical and most enchanting
creature; and I can see nothing for it but that I should return to-morrow
morning and satisfy your landlady’s demands.’
‘You strangely misinterpret my confidence,’ was my reply;
‘and if you had at all appreciated my character, you would understand
that I can take no money at your hands.’
‘Your landlady will doubtless not be so particular,’ he
returned; ‘nor do I at all despair of persuading even your unconquerable
self. I desire you to examine me with critical indulgence.
My name is Henry Luxmore, Lord Southwark’s second son. I
possess nine thousand a year, the house in which we are now sitting,
and seven others in the best neighbourhoods in town. I do not
believe I am repulsive to the eye, and as for my character, you have
seen me under trial. I think you simply the most original of created
beings; I need not tell you what you know very well, that you are ravishingly
pretty; and I have nothing more to add, except that, foolish as it may
appear, I am already head over heels in love with you.’
‘Sir,’ said I, ‘I am prepared to be misjudged; but
while I continue to accept your hospitality that fact alone should be
enough to protect me from insult.’
‘Pardon me,’ said he: ‘I offer you marriage.’
And leaning back in his chair he replaced his cigar between his lips.
I own I was confounded by an offer, not only so unprepared, but couched
in terms so singular. But he knew very well how to obtain his
purposes, for he was not only handsome in person, but his very coolness
had a charm; and to make a long story short, a fortnight later I became
the wife of the Honourable Henry Luxmore.
For nearly twenty years I now led a life of almost perfect quiet.
My Henry had his weaknesses; I was twice driven to flee from his roof,
but not for long; for though he was easily over-excited, his nature
was placable below the surface, and with all his faults, I loved him
tenderly. At last he was taken from me; and such is the power
of self-deception, and so strange are the whims of the dying, he actually
assured me, with his latest breath, that he forgave the violence of
my temper!
There was but one pledge of the marriage, my daughter Clara. She
had, indeed, inherited a shadow of her father’s failing; but in
all things else, unless my partial eyes deceived me, she derived her
qualities from me, and might be called my moral image. On my side,
whatever else I may have done amiss, as a mother I was above reproach.
Here, then, was surely every promise for the future; here, at last,
was a relation in which I might hope to taste repose. But it was
not to be. You will hardly credit me when I inform you that she
ran away from home; yet such was the case. Some whim about oppressed
nationalities - Ireland, Poland, and the like - has turned her brain;
and if you should anywhere encounter a young lady (I must say, of remarkable
attractions) answering to the name of Luxmore, Lake, or Fonblanque (for
I am told she uses these indifferently, as well as many others), tell
her, from me, that I forgive her cruelty, and though I will never more
behold her face, I am at any time prepared to make her a liberal allowance.
On the death of Mr. Luxmore, I sought oblivion in the details of business.
I believe I have mentioned that seven mansions, besides this, formed
part of Mr. Luxmore’s property: I have found them seven white
elephants. The greed of tenants, the dishonesty of solicitors,
and the incapacity that sits upon the bench, have combined together
to make these houses the burthen of my life. I had no sooner,
indeed, begun to look into these matters for myself, than I discovered
so many injustices and met with so much studied incivility, that I was
plunged into a long series of lawsuits, some of which are pending to
this day. You must have heard my name already; I am the Mrs. Luxmore
of the Law Reports: a strange destiny, indeed, for one born with an
almost cowardly desire for peace! But I am of the stamp of those
who, when they have once begun a task, will rather die than leave their
duty unfulfilled. I have met with every obstacle: insolence and
ingratitude from my own lawyers; in my adversaries, that fault of obstinacy
which is to me perhaps the most distasteful in the calendar; from the
bench, civility indeed - always, I must allow, civility - but never
a spark of independence, never that knowledge of the law and love of
justice which we have a right to look for in a judge, the most august
of human officers. And still, against all these odds, I have undissuadably
persevered.
It was after the loss of one of my innumerable cases (a subject on which
I will not dwell) that it occurred to me to make a melancholy pilgrimage
to my various houses. Four were at that time tenantless and closed,
like pillars of salt, commemorating the corruption of the age and the
decline of private virtue. Three were occupied by persons who
had wearied me by every conceivable unjust demand and legal subterfuge
- persons whom, at that very hour, I was moving heaven and earth to
turn into the street. This was perhaps the sadder spectacle of
the two; and my heart grew hot within me to behold them occupying, in
my very teeth, and with an insolent ostentation, these handsome structures
which were as much mine as the flesh upon my body.
One more house remained for me to visit, that in which we now are.
I had let it (for at that period I lodged in a hotel, the life that
I have always preferred) to a Colonel Geraldine, a gentleman attached
to Prince Florizel of Bohemia, whom you must certainly have heard of;
and I had supposed, from the character and position of my tenant, that
here, at least, I was safe against annoyance. What was my surprise
to find this house also shuttered and apparently deserted! I will
not deny that I was offended; I conceived that a house, like a yacht,
was better to be kept in commission; and I promised myself to bring
the matter before my solicitor the following morning. Meanwhile
the sight recalled my fancy naturally to the past; and yielding to the
tender influence of sentiment, I sat down opposite the door upon the
garden parapet. It was August, and a sultry afternoon, but that
spot is sheltered, as you may observe by daylight, under the branches
of a spreading chestnut; the square, too, was deserted; there was a
sound of distant music in the air; and all combined to plunge me into
that most agreeable of states, which is neither happiness nor sorrow,
but shares the poignancy of both.
From this I was recalled by the arrival of a large van, very handsomely
appointed, drawn by valuable horses, mounted by several men of an appearance
more than decent, and bearing on its panels, instead of a trader’s
name, a coat-of-arms too modest to be deciphered from where I sat.
It drew up before my house, the door of which was immediately opened
by one of the men. His companions - I counted seven of them in
all - proceeded, with disciplined activity, to take from the van and
carry into the house a variety of hampers, bottle-baskets, and boxes,
such as are designed for plate and napery. The windows of the
dining-room were thrown widely open, as though to air it; and I saw
some of those within laying the table for a meal. Plainly, I concluded,
my tenant was about to return; and while still determined to submit
to no aggression on my rights, I was gratified by the number and discipline
of his attendants, and the quiet profusion that appeared to reign in
his establishment. I was still so thinking when, to my extreme
surprise, the windows and shutters of the dining-room were once more
closed; the men began to reappear from the interior and resume their
stations on the van; the last closed the door behind his exit; the van
drove away; and the house was once more left to itself, looking blindly
on the square with shuttered windows, as though the whole affair had
been a vision.
It was no vision, however; for, as I rose to my feet, and thus brought
my eyes a little nearer to the level of the fanlight over the door,
I saw that, though the day had still some hours to run, the hall lamps
had been lighted and left burning. Plainly, then, guests were
expected, and were not expected before night. For whom, I asked
myself with indignation, were such secret preparations likely to be
made? Although no prude, I am a woman of decided views upon morality;
if my house, to which my husband had brought me, was to serve in the
character of a petite maison, I saw myself forced, however unwillingly,
into a new course of litigation; and, determined to return and know
the worst, I hastened to my hotel for dinner.
I was at my post by ten. The night was clear and quiet; the moon
rode very high and put the lamps to shame; and the shadow below the
chestnut was black as ink. Here, then, I ensconced myself on the
low parapet, with my back against the railings, face to face with the
moonlit front of my old home, and ruminating gently on the past.
Time fled; eleven struck on all the city clocks; and presently after
I was aware of the approach of a gentleman of stately and agreeable
demeanour. He was smoking as he walked; his light paletôt,
which was open, did not conceal his evening clothes; and he bore himself
with a serious grace that immediately awakened my attention. Before
the door of this house he took a pass-key from his pocket, quietly admitted
himself, and disappeared into the lamplit hall.
He was scarcely gone when I observed another and a much younger man
approaching hastily from the opposite side of the square. Considering
the season of the year and the genial mildness of the night, he was
somewhat closely muffled up; and as he came, for all his hurry, he kept
looking nervously behind him. Arrived before my door, he halted
and set one foot upon the step, as though about to enter; then, with
a sudden change, he turned and began to hurry away; halted a second
time, as if in painful indecision; and lastly, with a violent gesture,
wheeled about, returned straight to the door, and rapped upon the knocker.
He was almost immediately admitted by the first arrival.
My curiosity was now broad awake. I made myself as small as I
could in the very densest of the shadow, and waited for the sequel.
Nor had I long to wait. From the same side of the square a second
young man made his appearance, walking slowly and softly, and like the
first, muffled to the nose. Before the house he paused, looked
all about him with a swift and comprehensive glance; and seeing the
square lie empty in the moon and lamplight, leaned far across the area
railings and appeared to listen to what was passing in the house.
From the dining-room there came the report of a champagne cork, and
following upon that, the sound of rich and manly laughter. The
listener took heart of grace, produced a key, unlocked the area gate,
shut it noiselessly behind him, and descended the stair. Just
when his head had reached the level of the pavement, he turned half
round and once more raked the square with a suspicious eyeshot.
The mufflings had fallen lower round his neck; the moon shone full upon
him; and I was startled to observe the pallor and passionate agitation
of his face.
I could remain no longer passive. Persuaded that something deadly
was afoot, I crossed the roadway and drew near the area railings.
There was no one below; the man must therefore have entered the house,
with what purpose I dreaded to imagine. I have at no part of my
career lacked courage; and now, finding the area gate was merely laid
to, I pushed it gently open and descended the stairs. The kitchen
door of the house, like the area gate, was closed but not fastened.
It flashed upon me that the criminal was thus preparing his escape;
and the thought, as it confirmed the worst of my suspicions, lent me
new resolve. I entered the house; and being now quite reckless
of my life, I shut and locked the door.
From the dining-room above I could hear the pleasant tones of a voice
in easy conversation. On the ground floor all was not only profoundly
silent, but the darkness seemed to weigh upon my eyes. Here, then,
I stood for some time, having thrust myself uncalled into the utmost
peril, and being destitute of any power to help or interfere.
Nor will I deny that fear had begun already to assail me, when I became
aware, all at once and as though by some immediate but silent incandescence,
of a certain glimmering of light upon the passage floor. Towards
this I groped my way with infinite precaution; and having come at length
as far as the angle of the corridor, beheld the door of the butler’s
pantry standing just ajar and a narrow thread of brightness falling
from the chink. Creeping still closer, I put my eye to the aperture.
The man sat within upon a chair, listening, I could see, with the most
rapt attention. On a table before him he had laid a watch, a pair
of steel revolvers, and a bull’s-eye lantern. For one second
many contradictory theories and projects whirled together in my head;
the next, I had slammed the door and turned the key upon the malefactor.
Surprised at my own decision, I stood and panted, leaning on the wall.
From within the pantry not a sound was to be heard; the man, whatever
he was, had accepted his fate without a struggle, and now, as I hugged
myself to fancy, sat frozen with terror and looking for the worst to
follow. I promised myself that he should not be disappointed;
and the better to complete my task, I turned to ascend the stairs.
The situation, as I groped my way to the first floor, appealed to me
suddenly by my strong sense of humour. Here was I, the owner of
the house, burglariously present in its walls; and there, in the dining-room,
were two gentlemen, unknown to me, seated complacently at supper, and
only saved by my promptitude from some surprising or deadly interruption.
It were strange if I could not manage to extract the matter of amusement
from so unusual a situation.
Behind this dining-room, there is a small apartment intended for a library.
It was to this that I cautiously groped my way; and you will see how
fortune had exactly served me. The weather, I have said, was sultry;
in order to ventilate the dining-room and yet preserve the uninhabited
appearance of the mansion to the front, the window of the library had
been widely opened, and the door of communication between the two apartments
left ajar. To this interval I now applied my eye.
Wax tapers, set in silver candlesticks, shed their chastened brightness
on the damask of the tablecloth and the remains of a cold collation
of the rarest delicacy. The two gentlemen had finished supper,
and were now trifling with cigars and maraschino; while in a silver
spirit lamp, coffee of the most captivating fragrance was preparing
in the fashion of the East. The elder of the two, he who had first
arrived, was placed directly facing me; the other was set on his left
hand. Both, like the man in the butler’s pantry, seemed
to be intently listening; and on the face of the second I thought I
could perceive the marks of fear. Oddly enough, however, when
they came to speak, the parts were found to be reversed.
‘I assure you,’ said the elder gentleman, ‘I not only
heard the slamming of a door, but the sound of very guarded footsteps.’
‘Your highness was certainly deceived,’ replied the other.
‘I am endowed with the acutest hearing, and I can swear that not
a mouse has rustled.’ Yet the pallor and contraction of
his features were in total discord with the tenor of his words.
His highness (whom, of course, I readily divined to be Prince Florizel)
looked at his companion for the least fraction of a second; and though
nothing shook the easy quiet of his attitude, I could see that he was
far from being duped. ‘It is well,’ said he; ‘let
us dismiss the topic. And now, sir, that I have very freely explained
the sentiments by which I am directed, let me ask you, according to
your promise, to imitate my frankness.’
‘I have heard you,’ replied the other, ‘with great
interest.’
‘With singular patience,’ said the prince politely.
‘Ay, your highness, and with unlooked-for sympathy,’ returned
the young man. ‘I know not how to tell the change that has
befallen me. You have, I must suppose, a charm, to which even
your enemies are subject.’ He looked at the clock on the
mantelpiece and visibly blanched. ‘So late!’ he cried.
‘Your highness - God knows I am now speaking from the heart -
before it be too late, leave this house!’
The prince glanced once more at his companion, and then very deliberately
shook the ash from his cigar. ‘That is a strange remark,’
said he; ‘and á propos de bottes, I never
continue a cigar when once the ash is fallen; the spell breaks, the
soul of the flavour flies away, and there remains but the dead body
of tobacco; and I make it a rule to throw away that husk and choose
another.’ He suited the action to the words.
‘Do not trifle with my appeal,’ resumed the young man, in
tones that trembled with emotion. ‘It is made at the price
of my honour and to the peril of my life. Go - go now! lose not
a moment; and if you have any kindness for a young man, miserably deceived
indeed, but not devoid of better sentiments, look not behind you as
you leave.’
‘Sir,’ said the prince, ‘I am here upon your honour;
assure you upon mine that I shall continue to rely upon that safeguard.
The coffee is ready; I must again trouble you, I fear.’
And with a courteous movement of the hand, he seemed to invite his companion
to pour out the coffee.
The unhappy young man rose from his seat. ‘I appeal to you,’
he cried, ‘by every holy sentiment, in mercy to me, if not in
pity to yourself, begone before it is too late.’
‘Sir,’ replied the prince, ‘I am not readily accessible
to fear; and if there is one defect to which I must plead guilty, it
is that of a curious disposition. You go the wrong way about to
make me leave this house, in which I play the part of your entertainer;
and, suffer me to add, young man, if any peril threaten us, it was of
your contriving, not of mine.’
‘Alas, you do not know to what you condemn me,’ cried the
other. ‘But I at least will have no hand in it.’
With these words he carried his hand to his pocket, hastily swallowed
the contents of a phial, and, with the very act, reeled back and fell
across his chair upon the floor. The prince left his place and
came and stood above him, where he lay convulsed upon the carpet.
‘Poor moth!’ I heard his highness murmur. ‘Alas,
poor moth! must we again inquire which is the more fatal - weakness
or wickedness? And can a sympathy with ideas, surely not ignoble
in themselves, conduct a man to this dishonourable death?’
By this time I had pushed the door open and walked into the room.
‘Your highness,’ said I, ‘this is no time for moralising;
with a little promptness we may save this creature’s life; and
as for the other, he need cause you no concern, for I have him safely
under lock and key.’
The prince had turned about upon my entrance, and regarded me certainly
with no alarm, but with a profundity of wonder which almost robbed me
of my self-possession. ‘My dear madam,’ he cried at
last, ‘and who the devil are you?’
I was already on the floor beside the dying man. I had, of course,
no idea with what drug he had attempted his life, and I was forced to
try him with a variety of antidotes. Here were both oil and vinegar,
for the prince had done the young man the honour of compounding for
him one of his celebrated salads; and of each of these I administered
from a quarter to half a pint, with no apparent efficacy. I next
plied him with the hot coffee, of which there may have been near upon
a quart.
‘Have you no milk?’ I inquired.
‘I fear, madam, that milk has been omitted,’ returned the
prince.
‘Salt, then,’ said I; ‘salt is a revulsive.
Pass the salt.’
‘And possibly the mustard?’ asked his highness, as he offered
me the contents of the various salt-cellars poured together on a plate.
‘Ah,’ cried I, ‘the thought is excellent! Mix
me about half a pint of mustard, drinkably dilute.’
Whether it was the salt or the mustard, or the mere combination of so
many subversive agents, as soon as the last had been poured over his
throat, the young sufferer obtained relief.
‘There!’ I exclaimed, with natural triumph, ‘I have
saved a life!’
‘And yet, madam,’ returned the prince, ‘your mercy
may be cruelty disguised. Where the honour is lost, it is, at
least, superfluous to prolong the life.’
‘If you had led a life as changeable as mine, your highness,’
I replied, ‘you would hold a very different opinion. For
my part, and after whatever extremity of misfortune or disgrace, I should
still count to-morrow worth a trial.’
‘You speak as a lady, madam,’ said the prince; ‘and
for such you speak the truth. But to men there is permitted such
a field of license, and the good behaviour asked of them is at once
so easy and so little, that to fail in that is to fall beyond the reach
of pardon. But will you suffer me to repeat a question, put to
you at first, I am afraid, with some defect of courtesy; and to ask
you once more, who you are and how I have the honour of your company?’
‘I am the proprietor of the house in which we stand,’ said
I.
‘And still I am at fault,’ returned the prince.
But at that moment the timepiece on the mantel-shelf began to strike
the hour of twelve; and the young man, raising himself upon one elbow,
with an expression of despair and horror that I have never seen excelled,
cried lamentably, ‘Midnight! oh, just God!’ We stood
frozen to our places, while the tingling hammer of the timepiece measured
the remaining strokes; nor had we yet stirred, so tragic had been the
tones of the young man, when the various bells of London began in turn
to declare the hour. The timepiece was inaudible beyond the walls
of the chamber where we stood; but the second pulsation of Big Ben had
scarcely throbbed into the night, before a sharp detonation rang about
the house. The prince sprang for the door by which I had entered;
but quick as he was, I yet contrived to intercept him.
‘Are you armed?’ I cried.
‘No, madam,’ replied he. ‘You remind me appositely;
I will take the poker.’
‘The man below,’ said I, ‘has two revolvers.
Would you confront him at such odds?’
He paused, as though staggered in his purpose.
‘And yet, madam,’ said he, ‘we cannot continue to
remain in ignorance of what has passed.’
‘No!’ cried I. ‘And who proposes it? I
am as curious as yourself, but let us rather send for the police; or,
if your highness dreads a scandal, for some of your own servants.’
‘Nay, madam,’ he replied, smiling, ‘for so brave a
lady, you surprise me. Would you have me, then, send others where
I fear to go myself?’
‘You are perfectly right,’ said I, ‘and I was entirely
wrong. Go, in God’s name, and I will hold the candle!’
Together, therefore, we descended to the lower story, he carrying the
poker, I the light; and together we approached and opened the door of
the butler’s pantry. In some sort, I believe, I was prepared
for the spectacle that met our eyes; I was prepared, that is, to find
the villain dead, but the rude details of such a violent suicide I was
unable to endure. The prince, unshaken by horror as he had remained
unshaken by alarm, assisted me with the most respectful gallantry to
regain the dining-room.
There we found our patient, still, indeed, deadly pale, but vastly recovered
and already seated on a chair. He held out both his hands with
a most pitiful gesture of interrogation.
‘He is dead,’ said the prince.
‘Alas!’ cried the young man, ‘and it should be I!
What do I do, thus lingering on the stage I have disgraced, while he,
my sure comrade, blameworthy indeed for much, but yet the soul of fidelity,
has judged and slain himself for an involuntary fault? Ah, sir,’
said he, ‘and you too, madam, without whose cruel help I should
be now beyond the reach of my accusing conscience, you behold in me
the victim equally of my own faults and virtues. I was born a
hater of injustice; from my most tender years my blood boiled against
heaven when I beheld the sick, and against men when I witnessed the
sorrows of the poor; the pauper’s crust stuck in my throat when
I sat down to eat my dainties, and the cripple child has set me weeping.
What was there in that but what was noble? and yet observe to what a
fall these thoughts have led me! Year after year this passion
for the lost besieged me closer. What hope was there in kings?
what hope in these well-feathered classes that now roll in money?
I had observed the course of history; I knew the burgess, our ruler
of to-day, to be base, cowardly, and dull; I saw him, in every age,
combine to pull down that which was immediately above and to prey upon
those that were below; his dulness, I knew, would ultimately bring about
his ruin; I knew his days were numbered, and yet how was I to wait?
how was I to let the poor child shiver in the rain? The better
days, indeed, were coming, but the child would die before that.
Alas, your highness, in surely no ungenerous impatience I enrolled myself
among the enemies of this unjust and doomed society; in surely no unnatural
desire to keep the fires of my philanthropy alight, I bound myself by
an irrevocable oath.
‘That oath is all my history. To give freedom to posterity
I had forsworn my own. I must attend upon every signal; and soon
my father complained of my irregular hours and turned me from his house.
I was engaged in betrothal to an honest girl; from her also I had to
part, for she was too shrewd to credit my inventions and too innocent
to be entrusted with the truth. Behold me, then, alone with conspirators!
Alas! as the years went on, my illusions left me. Surrounded as
I was by the fervent disciples and apologists of revolution, I beheld
them daily advance in confidence and desperation; I beheld myself, upon
the other hand, and with an almost equal regularity, decline in faith.
I had sacrificed all to further that cause in which I still believed;
and daily I began to grow in doubts if we were advancing it indeed.
Horrible was the society with which we warred, but our own means were
not less horrible.
‘I will not dwell upon my sufferings; I will not pause to tell
you how, when I beheld young men still free and happy, married, fathers
of children, cheerfully toiling at their work, my heart reproached me
with the greatness and vanity of my unhappy sacrifice. I will
not describe to you how, worn by poverty, poor lodging, scanty food,
and an unquiet conscience, my health began to fail, and in the long
nights, as I wandered bedless in the rainy streets, the most cruel sufferings
of the body were added to the tortures of my mind. These things
are not personal to me; they are common to all unfortunates in my position.
An oath, so light a thing to swear, so grave a thing to break: an oath,
taken in the heat of youth, repented with what sobbings of the heart,
but yet in vain repented, as the years go on: an oath, that was once
the very utterance of the truth of God, but that falls to be the symbol
of a meaningless and empty slavery; such is the yoke that many young
men joyfully assume, and under whose dead weight they live to suffer
worse than death.
‘It is not that I was patient. I have begged to be released;
but I knew too much, and I was still refused. I have fled; ay,
and for the time successfully. I reached Paris. I found
a lodging in the Rue St. Jacques, almost opposite the Val de Grâce.
My room was mean and bare, but the sun looked into it towards evening;
it commanded a peep of a green garden; a bird hung by a neighbour’s
window and made the morning beautiful; and I, who was sick, might lie
in bed and rest myself: I, who was in full revolt against the principles
that I had served, was now no longer at the beck of the council, and
was no longer charged with shameful and revolting tasks. Oh! what
an interval of peace was that! I still dream, at times, that I
can hear the note of my neighbour’s bird.
‘My money was running out, and it became necessary that I should
find employment. Scarcely had I been three days upon the search,
ere I thought that I was being followed. I made certain of the
features of the man, which were quite strange to me, and turned into
a small café, where I whiled away an hour, pretending to read
the papers, but inwardly convulsed with terror. When I came forth
again into the street, it was quite empty, and I breathed again; but
alas, I had not turned three corners, when I once more observed the
human hound pursuing me. Not an hour was to be lost; timely submission
might yet preserve a life which otherwise was forfeit and dishonoured;
and I fled, with what speed you may conceive, to the Paris agency of
the society I served.
‘My submission was accepted. I took up once more the hated
burthen of that life; once more I was at the call of men whom I despised
and hated, while yet I envied and admired them. They at least
were wholehearted in the things they purposed; but I, who had once been
such as they, had fallen from the brightness of my faith, and now laboured,
like a hireling, for the wages of a loathed existence. Ay, sir,
to that I was condemned; I obeyed to continue to live, and lived but
to obey.
‘The last charge that was laid upon me was the one which has to-night
so tragically ended. Boldly telling who I was, I was to request
from your highness, on behalf of my society, a private audience, where
it was designed to murder you. If one thing remained to me of
my old convictions, it was the hate of kings; and when this task was
offered me, I took it gladly. Alas, sir, you triumphed.
As we supped, you gained upon my heart. Your character, your talents,
your designs for our unhappy country, all had been misrepresented.
I began to forget you were a prince; I began, all too feelingly, to
remember that you were a man. As I saw the hour approach, I suffered
agonies untold; and when, at last, we heard the slamming of the door
which announced in my unwilling ears the arrival of the partner of my
crime, you will bear me out with what instancy I besought you to depart.
You would not, alas! and what could I? Kill you, I could not;
my heart revolted, my hand turned back from such a deed. Yet it
was impossible that I should suffer you to stay; for when the hour struck
and my companion came, true to his appointment, and he, at least, true
to our design, I could neither suffer you to be killed nor yet him to
be arrested. From such a tragic passage, death, and death alone,
could save me; and it is no fault of mine if I continue to exist.
‘But you, madam,’ continued the young man, addressing himself
more directly to myself, ‘were doubtless born to save the prince
and to confound our purposes. My life you have prolonged; and
by turning the key on my companion, you have made me the author of his
death. He heard the hour strike; he was impotent to help; and
thinking himself forfeit to honour, thinking that I should fall alone
upon his highness and perish for lack of his support, he has turned
his pistol on himself.’
‘You are right,’ said Prince Florizel: ‘it was in
no ungenerous spirit that you brought these burthens on yourself; and
when I see you so nobly to blame, so tragically punished, I stand like
one reproved. For is it not strange, madam, that you and I, by
practising accepted and inconsiderable virtues, and commonplace but
still unpardonable faults, should stand here, in the sight of God, with
what we call clean hands and quiet consciences; while this poor youth,
for an error that I could almost envy him, should be sunk beyond the
reach of hope?
‘Sir,’ resumed the prince, turning to the young man, ‘I
cannot help you; my help would but unchain the thunderbolt that overhangs
you; and I can but leave you free.’
‘And, sir,’ said I, ‘as this house belongs to me,
I will ask you to have the kindness to remove the body. You and
your conspirators, it appears to me, can hardly in civility do less.’
‘It shall be done,’ said the young man, with a dismal accent.
‘And you, dear madam,’ said the prince, ‘you, to whom
I owe my life, how can I serve you?’
‘Your highness,’ I said, ‘to be very plain, this is
my favourite house, being not only a valuable property, but endeared
to me by various associations. I have endless troubles with tenants
of the ordinary class: and at first applauded my good fortune when I
found one of the station of your Master of the Horse. I now begin
to think otherwise: dangers set a siege about great personages; and
I do not wish my tenement to share these risks. Procure me the
resiliation of the lease, and I shall feel myself your debtor.’
‘I must tell you, madam,’ replied his highness, ‘that
Colonel Geraldine is but a cloak for myself; and I should be sorry indeed
to think myself so unacceptable a tenant.’
‘Your highness,’ said I, ‘I have conceived a sincere
admiration for your character; but on the subject of house property,
I cannot allow the interference of my feelings. I will, however,
to prove to you that there is nothing personal in my request, here solemnly
engage my word that I will never put another tenant in this house.’
‘Madam,’ said Florizel, ‘you plead your cause too
charmingly to be refused.’
Thereupon we all three withdrew. The young man, still reeling
in his walk, departed by himself to seek the assistance of his fellow-conspirators;
and the prince, with the most attentive gallantry, lent me his escort
to the door of my hotel. The next day, the lease was cancelled;
nor from that hour to this, though sometimes regretting my engagement,
have I suffered a tenant in this house.
THE SUPERFLUOUS MANSION (Continued).
As soon as the old lady had finished her relation, Somerset made
haste to offer her his compliments.
‘Madam,’ said he, ‘your story is not only entertaining
but instructive; and you have told it with infinite vivacity.
I was much affected towards the end, as I held at one time very liberal
opinions, and should certainly have joined a secret society if I had
been able to find one. But the whole tale came home to me; and
I was the better able to feel for you in your various perplexities,
as I am myself of somewhat hasty temper.’
‘I do not understand you,’ said Mrs. Luxmore, with some
marks of irritation. ‘You must have strangely misinterpreted
what I have told you. You fill me with surprise.’
Somerset, alarmed by the old lady’s change of tone and manner,
hurried to recant.
‘Dear Mrs. Luxmore,’ said he, ‘you certainly misconstrue
my remark. As a man of somewhat fiery humour, my conscience repeatedly
pricked me when I heard what you had suffered at the hands of persons
similarly constituted.’
‘Oh, very well indeed,’ replied the old lady; ‘and
a very proper spirit. I regret that I have met with it so rarely.’
‘But in all this,’ resumed the young man, ‘I perceive
nothing that concerns myself.’
‘I am about to come to that,’ she returned. ‘And
you have already before you, in the pledge I gave Prince Florizel, one
of the elements of the affair. I am a woman of the nomadic sort,
and when I have no case before the courts I make it a habit to visit
continental spas: not that I have ever been ill; but then I am no longer
young, and I am always happy in a crowd. Well, to come more shortly
to the point, I am now on the wing for Evian; this incubus of a house,
which I must leave behind and dare not let, hangs heavily upon my hands;
and I propose to rid myself of that concern, and do you a very good
turn into the bargain, by lending you the mansion, with all its fittings,
as it stands. The idea was sudden; it appealed to me as humorous:
and I am sure it will cause my relatives, if they should ever hear of
it, the keenest possible chagrin. Here, then, is the key; and
when you return at two to-morrow afternoon, you will find neither me
nor my cats to disturb you in your new possession.’
So saying, the old lady arose, as if to dismiss her visitor; but Somerset,
looking somewhat blankly on the key, began to protest.
‘Dear Mrs. Luxmore,’ said he, ‘this is a most unusual
proposal. You know nothing of me, beyond the fact that I displayed
both impudence and timidity. I may be the worst kind of scoundrel;
I may sell your furniture - ’
‘You may blow up the house with gunpowder, for what I care!’
cried Mrs. Luxmore. ‘It is in vain to reason. Such
is the force of my character that, when I have one idea clearly in my
head, I do not care two straws for any side consideration. It
amuses me to do it, and let that suffice. On your side, you may
do what you please - let apartments, or keep a private hotel; on mine,
I promise you a full month’s warning before I return, and I never
fail religiously to keep my promises.’
The young man was about to renew his protest, when he observed a sudden
and significant change in the old lady’s countenance.
‘If I thought you capable of disrespect!’ she cried.
‘Madam,’ said Somerset, with the extreme fervour of asseveration,
‘madam, I accept. I beg you to understand that I accept
with joy and gratitude.’
‘Ah well,’ returned Mrs. Luxmore, ‘if I am mistaken,
let it pass. And now, since all is comfortably settled, I wish
you a good-night.’
Thereupon, as if to leave him no room for repentance, she hurried Somerset
out of the front door, and left him standing, key in hand, upon the
pavement.
The next day, about the hour appointed, the young man found his way
to the square, which I will here call Golden Square, though that was
not its name. What to expect, he knew not; for a man may live
in dreams, and yet be unprepared for their realisation. It was
already with a certain pang of surprise that he beheld the mansion,
standing in the eye of day, a solid among solids. The key, upon
trial, readily opened the front door; he entered that great house, a
privileged burglar; and, escorted by the echoes of desertion, rapidly
reviewed the empty chambers. Cats, servant, old lady, the very
marks of habitation, like writing on a slate, had been in these few
hours obliterated. He wandered from floor to floor, and found
the house of great extent; the kitchen offices commodious and well appointed;
the rooms many and large; and the drawing-room, in particular, an apartment
of princely size and tasteful decoration. Although the day without
was warm, genial, and sunny, with a ruffling wind from the quarter of
Torquay, a chill, as it were, of suspended animation inhabited the house.
Dust and shadows met the eye; and but for the ominous procession of
the echoes, and the rumour of the wind among the garden trees, the ear
of the young man was stretched in vain.
Behind the dining-room, that pleasant library, referred to by the old
lady in her tale, looked upon the flat roofs and netted cupolas of the
kitchen quarters; and on a second visit, this room appeared to greet
him with a smiling countenance. He might as well, he thought,
avoid the expense of lodging: the library, fitted with an iron bedstead
which he had remarked, in one of the upper chambers, would serve his
purpose for the night; while in the dining-room, which was large, airy,
and lightsome, looking on the square and garden, he might very agreeably
pass his days, cook his meals, and study to bring himself to some proficiency
in that art of painting which he had recently determined to adopt.
It did not take him long to make the change: he had soon returned to
the mansion with his modest kit; and the cabman who brought him was
readily induced, by the young man’s pleasant manner and a small
gratuity, to assist him in the installation of the iron bed. By
six in the evening, when Somerset went forth to dine, he was able to
look back upon the mansion with a sense of pride and property.
Four-square it stood, of an imposing frontage, and flanked on either
side by family hatchments. His eye, from where he stood whistling
in the key, with his back to the garden railings, reposed on every feature
of reality; and yet his own possession seemed as flimsy as a dream.
In the course of a few days, the genteel inhabitants of the square began
to remark the customs of their neighbour. The sight of a young
gentleman discussing a clay pipe, about four o’clock of the afternoon,
in the drawing-room balcony of so discreet a mansion; and perhaps still
more, his periodical excursion to a decent tavern in the neighbourhood,
and his unabashed return, nursing the full tankard: had presently raised
to a high pitch the interest and indignation of the liveried servants
of the square. The disfavour of some of these gentlemen at first
proceeded to the length of insult; but Somerset knew how to be affable
with any class of men; and a few rude words merrily accepted, and a
few glasses amicably shared, gained for him the right of toleration.
The young man had embraced the art of Raphael, partly from a notion
of its ease, partly from an inborn distrust of offices. He scorned
to bear the yoke of any regular schooling; and proceeded to turn one
half of the dining-room into a studio for the reproduction of still
life. There he amassed a variety of objects, indiscriminately
chosen from the kitchen, the drawing-room, and the back garden; and
there spent his days in smiling assiduity. Meantime, the great
bulk of empty building overhead lay, like a load, upon his imagination.
To hold so great a stake and to do nothing, argued some defect of energy;
and he at length determined to act upon the hint given by Mrs. Luxmore
herself, and to stick, with wafers, in the window of the dining-room,
a small handbill announcing furnished lodgings. At half-past six
of a fine July morning, he affixed the bill, and went forth into the
square to study the result. It seemed, to his eye, promising and
unpretentious; and he returned to the drawing-room balcony, to consider,
over a studious pipe, the knotty problem of how much he was to charge.
Thereupon he somewhat relaxed in his devotion to the art of painting.
Indeed, from that time forth, he would spend the best part of the day
in the front balcony, like the attentive angler poring on his float;
and the better to support the tedium, he would frequently console himself
with his clay pipe. On several occasions, passers-by appeared
to be arrested by the ticket, and on several others ladies and gentlemen
drove to the very doorstep by the carriageful; but it appeared there
was something repulsive in the appearance of the house; for with one
accord, they would cast but one look upward, and hastily resume their
onward progress or direct the driver to proceed. Somerset had
thus the mortification of actually meeting the eye of a large number
of lodging-seekers; and though he hastened to withdraw his pipe, and
to compose his features to an air of invitation, he was never rewarded
by so much as an inquiry. ‘Can there,’ he thought,
‘be anything repellent in myself?’ But a candid examination
in one of the pier-glasses of the drawing-room led him to dismiss the
fear.
Something, however, was amiss. His vast and accurate calculations
on the fly-leaves of books, or on the backs of playbills, appeared to
have been an idle sacrifice of time. By these, he had variously
computed the weekly takings of the house, from sums as modest as five-and-twenty
shillings, up to the more majestic figure of a hundred pounds; and yet,
in despite of the very elements of arithmetic, here he was making literally
nothing.
This incongruity impressed him deeply and occupied his thoughtful leisure
on the balcony; and at last it seemed to him that he had detected the
error of his method. ‘This,’ he reflected, ‘is
an age of generous display: the age of the sandwich-man, of Griffiths,
of Pears’ legendary soap, and of Eno’s fruit salt, which,
by sheer brass and notoriety, and the most disgusting pictures I ever
remember to have seen, has overlaid that comforter of my childhood,
Lamplough’s pyretic saline. Lamplough was genteel, Eno was
omnipresent; Lamplough was trite, Eno original and abominably vulgar;
and here have I, a man of some pretensions to knowledge of the world,
contented myself with half a sheet of note-paper, a few cold words which
do not directly address the imagination, and the adornment (if adornment
it may be called) of four red wafers! Am I, then, to sink with
Lamplough, or to soar with Eno? Am I to adopt that modesty which
is doubtless becoming in a duke? or to take hold of the red facts of
life with the emphasis of the tradesman and the poet?’
Pursuant upon these meditations, he procured several sheets of the very
largest size of drawing-paper; and laying forth his paints, proceeded
to compose an ensign that might attract the eye, and at the same time,
in his own phrase, directly address the imagination of the passenger.
Something taking in the way of colour, a good, savoury choice of words,
and a realistic design setting forth the life a lodger might expect
to lead within the walls of that palace of delight: these, he perceived,
must be the elements of his advertisement. It was possible, upon
the one hand, to depict the sober pleasures of domestic life, the evening
fire, blond-headed urchins and the hissing urn; but on the other, it
was possible (and he almost felt as if it were more suited to his muse)
to set forth the charms of an existence somewhat wider in its range
or, boldly say, the paradise of the Mohammedan. So long did the
artist waver between these two views, that, before he arrived at a conclusion,
he had finally conceived and completed both designs. With the
proverbially tender heart of the parent, he found himself unable to
sacrifice either of these offsprings of his art; and decided to expose
them on alternate days. ‘In this way,’ he thought,
‘I shall address myself indifferently to all classes of the world.’
The tossing of a penny decided the only remaining point; and the more
imaginative canvas received the suffrages of fortune, and appeared first
in the window of the mansion. It was of a high fancy, the legend
eloquently writ, the scheme of colour taking and bold; and but for the
imperfection of the artist’s drawing, it might have been taken
for a model of its kind. As it was, however, when viewed from
his favourite point against the garden railings, and with some touch
of distance, it caused a pleasurable rising of the artist’s heart.
‘I have thrown away,’ he ejaculated, ‘an invaluable
motive; and this shall be the subject of my first academy picture.’
The fate of neither of these works was equal to its merit. A crowd
would certainly, from time to time, collect before the area-railings;
but they came to jeer and not to speculate; and those who pushed their
inquiries further, were too plainly animated by the spirit of derision.
The racier of the two cartoons displayed, indeed, no symptom of attractive
merit; and though it had a certain share of that success called scandalous,
failed utterly of its effect. On the day, however, of the second
appearance of the companion work, a real inquirer did actually present
himself before the eyes of Somerset.
This was a gentlemanly man, with some marks of recent merriment, and
his voice under inadequate control.
‘I beg your pardon,’ said he, ‘but what is the meaning
of your extraordinary bill?’
‘I beg yours,’ returned Somerset hotly. ‘Its
meaning is sufficiently explicit.’ And being now, from dire
experience, fearful of ridicule, he was preparing to close the door,
when the gentleman thrust his cane into the aperture.
‘Not so fast, I beg of you,’ said he. ‘If you
really let apartments, here is a possible tenant at your door; and nothing
would give me greater pleasure than to see the accommodation and to
learn your terms.’
His heart joyously beating, Somerset admitted the visitor, showed him
over the various apartments, and, with some return of his persuasive
eloquence, expounded their attractions. The gentleman was particularly
pleased by the elegant proportions of the drawing-room.
‘This,’ he said, ‘would suit me very well. What,
may I ask, would be your terms a week, for this floor and the one above
it?’
‘I was thinking,’ returned Somerset, ‘of a hundred
pounds.’
‘Surely not,’ exclaimed the gentleman.
‘Well, then,’ returned Somerset, ‘fifty.’
The gentleman regarded him with an air of some amazement. ‘You
seem to be strangely elastic in your demands,’ said he.
‘What if I were to proceed on your own principle of division,
and offer twenty-five?’
‘Done!’ cried Somerset; and then, overcome by a sudden embarrassment,
‘You see,’ he added apologetically, ‘it is all found
money for me.’
‘Really?’ said the stranger, looking at him all the while
with growing wonder. ‘Without extras, then?’
‘I - I suppose so,’ stammered the keeper of the lodging-house.
‘Service included?’ pursued the gentleman.
‘Service?’ cried Somerset. ‘Do you mean that
you expect me to empty your slops?’
The gentleman regarded him with a very friendly interest. ‘My
dear fellow,’ said he, ‘if you take my advice, you will
give up this business.’ And thereupon he resumed his hat
and took himself away.
This smarting disappointment produced a strong effect on the artist
of the cartoons; and he began with shame to eat up his rosier illusions.
First one and then the other of his great works was condemned, withdrawn
from exhibition, and relegated, as a mere wall-picture, to the decoration
of the dining-room. Their place was taken by a replica of the
original wafered announcement, to which, in particularly large letters,
he had added the pithy rubric: ‘No service.’
Meanwhile he had fallen into something as nearly bordering on low spirits
as was consistent with his disposition; depressed, at once by the failure
of his scheme, the laughable turn of his late interview, and the judicial
blindness of the public to the merit of the twin cartoons.
Perhaps a week had passed before he was again startled by the note of
the knocker. A gentleman of a somewhat foreign and somewhat military
air, yet closely shaven and wearing a soft hat, desired in the politest
terms to visit the apartments. He had (he explained) a friend,
a gentleman in tender health, desirous of a sedate and solitary life,
apart from interruptions and the noises of the common lodging-house.
‘The unusual clause,’ he continued, ‘in your announcement,
particularly struck me. “This,” I said, “is
the place for Mr. Jones.” You are yourself, sir, a professional
gentleman?’ concluded the visitor, looking keenly in Somerset’s
face.
‘I am an artist,’ replied the young man lightly.
‘And these,’ observed the other, taking a side glance through
the open door of the dining-room, which they were then passing, ‘these
are some of your works. Very remarkable.’ And he again
and still more sharply peered into the countenance of the young man.
Somerset, unable to suppress a blush, made the more haste to lead his
visitor upstairs and to display the apartments.
‘Excellent,’ observed the stranger, as he looked from one
of the back windows. ‘Is that a mews behind, sir?
Very good. Well, sir: see here. My friend will take your
drawing-room floor; he will sleep in the back drawing-room; his nurse,
an excellent Irish widow, will attend on all his wants and occupy a
garret; he will pay you the round sum of ten dollars a week; and you,
on your part, will engage to receive no other lodger? I think
that fair.’
Somerset had scarcely words in which to clothe his gratitude and joy.
‘Agreed,’ said the other; ‘and to spare you trouble,
my friend will bring some men with him to make the changes. You
will find him a retiring inmate, sir; receives but few, and rarely leaves
the house, except at night.’
‘Since I have been in this house,’ returned Somerset, ‘I
have myself, unless it were to fetch beer, rarely gone abroad except
in the evening. But a man,’ he added, ‘must have some
amusement.’
An hour was then agreed on; the gentleman departed; and Somerset sat
down to compute in English money the value of the figure named.
The result of this investigation filled him with amazement and disgust;
but it was now too late; nothing remained but to endure; and he awaited
the arrival of his tenant, still trying, by various arithmetical expedients,
to obtain a more favourable quotation for the dollar. With the
approach of dusk, however, his impatience drove him once more to the
front balcony. The night fell, mild and airless; the lamps shone
around the central darkness of the garden; and through the tall grove
of trees that intervened, many warmly illuminated windows on the farther
side of the square, told their tale of white napery, choice wine, and
genial hospitality. The stars were already thickening overhead,
when the young man’s eyes alighted on a procession of three four-wheelers,
coasting round the garden railing and bound for the Superfluous Mansion.
They were laden with formidable boxes; moved in a military order, one
following another; and, by the extreme slowness of their advance, inspired
Somerset with the most serious ideas of his tenant’s malady.
By the time he had the door open, the cabs had drawn up beside the pavement;
and from the two first, there had alighted the military gentleman of
the morning and two very stalwart porters. These proceeded instantly
to take possession of the house; with their own hands, and firmly rejecting
Somerset’s assistance, they carried in the various crates and
boxes; with their own hands dismounted and transferred to the back drawing-room
the bed in which the tenant was to sleep; and it was not until the bustle
of arrival had subsided, and the arrangements were complete, that there
descended, from the third of the three vehicles, a gentleman of great
stature and broad shoulders, leaning on the shoulder of a woman in a
widow’s dress, and himself covered by a long cloak and muffled
in a coloured comforter.
Somerset had but a glimpse of him in passing; he was soon shut into
the back drawing-room; the other men departed; silence redescended on
the house; and had not the nurse appeared a little before half-past
ten, and, with a strong brogue, asked if there were a decent public-house
in the neighbourhood, Somerset might have still supposed himself to
be alone in the Superfluous Mansion.
Day followed day; and still the young man had never come by speech or
sight of his mysterious lodger. The doors of the drawing-room
flat were never open; and although Somerset could hear him moving to
and fro, the tall man had never quitted the privacy of his apartments.
Visitors, indeed, arrived; sometimes in the dusk, sometimes at intempestuous
hours of night or morning; men, for the most part; some meanly attired,
some decently; some loud, some cringing; and yet all, in the eyes of
Somerset, displeasing. A certain air of fear and secrecy was common
to them all; they were all voluble, he thought, and ill at ease; even
the military gentleman proved, on a closer inspection, to be no gentleman
at all; and as for the doctor who attended the sick man, his manners
were not suggestive of a university career. The nurse, again,
was scarcely a desirable house-fellow. Since her arrival, the
fall of whisky in the young man’s private bottle was much accelerated;
and though never communicative, she was at times unpleasantly familiar.
When asked about the patient’s health, she would dolorously shake
her head, and declare that the poor gentleman was in a pitiful condition.
Yet somehow Somerset had early begun to entertain the notion that his
complaint was other than bodily. The ill-looking birds that gathered
to the house, the strange noises that sounded from the drawing-room
in the dead hours of night, the careless attendance and intemperate
habits of the nurse, the entire absence of correspondence, the entire
seclusion of Mr. Jones himself, whose face, up to that hour, he could
not have sworn to in a court of justice - all weighed unpleasantly upon
the young man’s mind. A sense of something evil, irregular
and underhand, haunted and depressed him; and this uneasy sentiment
was the more firmly rooted in his mind, when, in the fulness of time,
he had an opportunity of observing the features of his tenant.
It fell in this way. The young landlord was awakened about four
in the morning by a noise in the hall. Leaping to his feet, and
opening the door of the library, he saw the tall man, candle in hand,
in earnest conversation with the gentleman who had taken the rooms.
The faces of both were strongly illuminated; and in that of his tenant,
Somerset could perceive none of the marks of disease, but every sign
of health, energy, and resolution. While he was still looking,
the visitor took his departure; and the invalid, having carefully fastened
the front door, sprang upstairs without a trace of lassitude.
That night upon his pillow, Somerset began to kindle once more into
the hot fit of the detective fever; and the next morning resumed the
practice of his art with careless hand and an abstracted mind.
The day was destined to be fertile in surprises; nor had he long been
seated at the easel ere the first of these occurred. A cab laden
with baggage drew up before the door; and Mrs. Luxmore in person rapidly
mounted the steps and began to pound upon the knocker. Somerset
hastened to attend the summons.
‘My dear fellow,’ she said, with the utmost gaiety, ‘here
I come dropping from the moon. I am delighted to find you faithful;
and I have no doubt you will be equally pleased to be restored to liberty.’
Somerset could find no words, whether of protest or welcome; and the
spirited old lady pushed briskly by him and paused on the threshold
of the dining-room. The sight that met her eyes was one well calculated
to inspire astonishment. The mantelpiece was arrayed with saucepans
and empty bottles; on the fire some chops were frying; the floor was
littered from end to end with books, clothes, walking-canes and the
materials of the painter’s craft; but what far outstripped the
other wonders of the place was the corner which had been arranged for
the study of still-life. This formed a sort of rockery; conspicuous
upon which, according to the principles of the art of composition, a
cabbage was relieved against a copper kettle, and both contrasted with
the mail of a boiled lobster.
‘My gracious goodness!’ cried the lady of the house; and
then, turning in wrath on the young man, ‘From what rank in life
are you sprung?’ she demanded. ‘You have the exterior
of a gentleman; but from the astonishing evidences before me, I should
say you can only be a greengrocer’s man. Pray, gather up
your vegetables, and let me see no more of you.’
‘Madam,’ babbled Somerset, ‘you promised me a month’s
warning.’
‘That was under a misapprehension,’ returned the old lady.
‘I now give you warning to leave at once.’
‘Madam,’ said the young man, ‘I wish I could; and
indeed, as far as I am concerned, it might be done. But then,
my lodger!’
‘Your lodger?’ echoed Mrs. Luxmore.
‘My lodger: why should I deny it?’ returned Somerset.
‘He is only by the week.’
The old lady sat down upon a chair. ‘You have a lodger?
- you?’ she cried. ‘And pray, how did you get him?’
‘By advertisement,’ replied the young man. ‘O madam,
I have not lived unobservantly. I adopted’ - his eyes involuntarily
shifted to the cartoons - ‘I adopted every method.’
Her eyes had followed his; for the first time in Somerset’s experience,
she produced a double eye-glass; and as soon as the full merit of the
works had flashed upon her, she gave way to peal after peal of her trilling
and soprano laughter.
‘Oh, I think you are perfectly delicious!’ she cried.
‘I do hope you had them in the window. M’Pherson,’
she continued, crying to her maid, who had been all this time grimly
waiting in the hall, ‘I lunch with Mr. Somerset. Take the
cellar key and bring some wine.’
In this gay humour she continued throughout the luncheon; presented
Somerset with a couple of dozen of wine, which she made M’Pherson
bring up from the cellar - ‘as a present, my dear,’ she
said, with another burst of tearful merriment, ‘for your charming
pictures, which you must be sure to leave me when you go;’ and
finally, protesting that she dared not spoil the absurdest houseful
of madmen in the whole of London, departed (as she vaguely phrased it)
for the continent of Europe.
She was no sooner gone, than Somerset encountered in the corridor the
Irish nurse; sober, to all appearance, and yet a prey to singularly
strong emotion. It was made to appear, from her account, that
Mr. Jones had already suffered acutely in his health from Mrs. Luxmore’s
visit, and that nothing short of a full explanation could allay the
invalid’s uneasiness. Somerset, somewhat staring, told what
he thought fit of the affair.
‘Is that all?’ cried the woman. ‘As God sees
you, is that all?’
‘My good woman,’ said the young man, ‘I have no idea
what you can be driving at. Suppose the lady were my friend’s
wife, suppose she were my fairy godmother, suppose she were the Queen
of Portugal; and how should that affect yourself or Mr. Jones?’
‘Blessed Mary!’ cried the nurse, ‘it’s he that
will be glad to hear it!’
And immediately she fled upstairs.
Somerset, on his part, returned to the dining-room, and with a very
thoughtful brow and ruminating many theories, disposed of the remainder
of the bottle. It was port; and port is a wine, sole among its
equals and superiors, that can in some degree support the competition
of tobacco. Sipping, smoking, and theorising, Somerset moved on
from suspicion to suspicion, from resolve to resolve, still growing
braver and rosier as the bottle ebbed. He was a sceptic, none
prouder of the name; he had no horror at command, whether for crimes
or vices, but beheld and embraced the world, with an immoral approbation,
the frequent consequence of youth and health. At the same time,
he felt convinced that he dwelt under the same roof with secret malefactors;
and the unregenerate instinct of the chase impelled him to severity.
The bottle had run low; the summer sun had finally withdrawn; and at
the same moment, night and the pangs of hunger recalled him from his
dreams.
He went forth, and dined in the Criterion: a dinner in consonance, not
so much with his purse, as with the admirable wine he had discussed.
What with one thing and another, it was long past midnight when he returned
home. A cab was at the door; and entering the hall, Somerset found
himself face to face with one of the most regular of the few who visited
Mr. Jones: a man of powerful figure, strong lineaments, and a chin-beard
in the American fashion. This person was carrying on one shoulder
a black portmanteau, seemingly of considerable weight. That he
should find a visitor removing baggage in the dead of night, recalled
some odd stories to the young man’s memory; he had heard of lodgers
who thus gradually drained away, not only their own effects, but the
very furniture and fittings of the house that sheltered them; and now,
in a mood between pleasantry and suspicion, and aping the manner of
a drunkard, he roughly bumped against the man with the chin-beard and
knocked the portmanteau from his shoulder to the floor. With a
face struck suddenly as white as paper, the man with the chin-beard
called lamentably on the name of his maker, and fell in a mere heap
on the mat at the foot of the stairs. At the same time, though
only for a single instant, the heads of the sick lodger and the Irish
nurse popped out like rabbits over the banisters of the first floor;
and on both the same scare and pallor were apparent.
The sight of this incredible emotion turned Somerset to stone, and he
continued speechless, while the man gathered himself together, and,
with the help of the handrail and audibly thanking God, scrambled once
more upon his feet.
‘What in Heaven’s name ails you?’ gasped the young
man as soon as he could find words and utterance.
‘Have you a drop of brandy?’ returned the other. ‘I
am sick.’
Somerset administered two drams, one after the other, to the man with
the chin-beard; who then, somewhat restored, began to confound himself
in apologies for what he called his miserable nervousness, the result,
he said, of a long course of dumb ague; and having taken leave with
a hand that still sweated and trembled, he gingerly resumed his burthen
and departed.
Somerset retired to bed but not to sleep. What, he asked himself,
had been the contents of the black portmanteau? Stolen goods?
the carcase of one murdered? or - and at the thought he sat upright
in bed - an infernal machine? He took a solemn vow that he would
set these doubts at rest; and with the next morning, installed himself
beside the dining-room window, vigilant with eye; and ear, to await
and profit by the earliest opportunity.
The hours went heavily by. Within the house there was no circumstance
of novelty; unless it might be that the nurse more frequently made little
journeys round the corner of the square, and before afternoon was somewhat
loose of speech and gait. A little after six, however, there came
round the corner of the gardens a very handsome and elegantly dressed
young woman, who paused a little way off, and for some time, and with
frequent sighs, contemplated the front of the Superfluous Mansion.
It was not the first time that she had thus stood afar and looked upon
it, like our common parents at the gates of Eden; and the young man
had already had occasion to remark the lively slimness of her carriage,
and had already been the butt of a chance arrow from her eye.
He hailed her coming, then, with pleasant feelings, and moved a little
nearer to the window to enjoy the sight. What was his surprise,
however, when, as if with a sensible effort, she drew near, mounted
the steps and tapped discreetly at the door! He made haste to
get before the Irish nurse, who was not improbably asleep, and had the
satisfaction to receive this gracious visitor in person.
She inquired for Mr. Jones; and then, without transition, asked the
young man if he were the person of the house (and at the words, he thought
he could perceive her to be smiling), ‘because,’ she added,
‘if you are, I should like to see some of the other rooms.’
Somerset told her he was under an engagement to receive no other lodgers;
but she assured him that would be no matter, as these were friends of
Mr. Jones’s. ‘And,’ she continued, moving suddenly
to the dining-room door, ‘let us begin here.’ Somerset
was too late to prevent her entering, and perhaps he lacked the courage
to essay. ‘Ah!’ she cried, ‘how changed it is!’
‘Madam,’ cried the young man, ‘since your entrance,
it is I who have the right to say so.’
She received this inane compliment with a demure and conscious droop
of the eyelids, and gracefully steering her dress among the mingled
litter, now with a smile, now with a sigh, reviewed the wonders of the
two apartments. She gazed upon the cartoons with sparkling eyes,
and a heightened colour, and in a somewhat breathless voice, expressed
a high opinion of their merits. She praised the effective disposition
of the rockery, and in the bedroom, of which Somerset had vainly endeavoured
to defend the entry, she fairly broke forth in admiration. ‘How
simple and manly!’ she cried: ‘none of that effeminacy of
neatness, which is so detestable in a man!’ Hard upon this,
telling him, before he had time to reply, that she very well knew her
way, and would trouble him no further, she took her leave with an engaging
smile, and ascended the staircase alone.
For more than an hour the young lady remained closeted with Mr. Jones;
and at the end of that time, the night being now come completely, they
left the house in company. This was the first time since the arrival
of his lodger, that Somerset had found himself alone with the Irish
widow; and without the loss of any more time than was required by decency,
he stepped to the foot of the stairs and hailed her by her name.
She came instantly, wreathed in weak smiles and with a nodding head;
and when the young man politely offered to introduce her to the treasures
of his art, she swore that nothing could afford her greater pleasure,
for, though she had never crossed the threshold, she had frequently
observed his beautiful pictures through the door. On entering
the dining-room, the sight of a bottle and two glasses prepared her
to be a gentle critic; and as soon as the pictures had been viewed and
praised, she was easily persuaded to join the painter in a single glass.
‘Here,’ she said, ‘are my respects; and a pleasure
it is, in this horrible house, to see a gentleman like yourself, so
affable and free, and a very nice painter, I am sure.’ One
glass so agreeably prefaced, was sure to lead to the acceptance of a
second; at the third, Somerset was free to cease from the affectation
of keeping her company; and as for the fourth, she asked it of her own
accord. ‘For indeed,’ said she, ‘what with all
these clocks and chemicals, without a drop of the creature life would
be impossible entirely. And you seen yourself that even M’Guire
was glad to beg for it. And even himself, when he is downhearted
with all these cruel disappointments, though as temperate a man as any
child, will be sometimes crying for a glass of it. And I’ll
thank you for a thimbleful to settle what I got.’ Soon after,
she began with tears to narrate the deathbed dispositions and lament
the trifling assets of her husband. Then she declared she heard
‘the master’ calling her, rose to her feet, made but one
lurch of it into the still-life rockery, and with her head upon the
lobster, fell into stertorous slumbers.
Somerset mounted at once to the first story, and opened the door of
the drawing-room, which was brilliantly lit by several lamps.
It was a great apartment; looking on the square with three tall windows,
and joined by a pair of ample folding-doors to the next room; elegant
in proportion, papered in sea-green, furnished in velvet of a delicate
blue, and adorned with a majestic mantelpiece of variously tinted marbles.
Such was the room that Somerset remembered; that which he now beheld
was changed in almost every feature: the furniture covered with a figured
chintz; the walls hung with a rhubarb-coloured paper, and diversified
by the curtained recesses for no less than seven windows. It seemed
to himself that he must have entered, without observing the transition,
into the adjoining house. Presently from these more specious changes,
his eye condescended to the many curious objects with which the floor
was littered. Here were the locks of dismounted pistols; clocks
and clockwork in every stage of demolition, some still busily ticking,
some reduced to their dainty elements; a great company of carboys, jars
and bottles; a carpenter’s bench and a laboratory-table.
The back drawing-room, to which Somerset proceeded, had likewise undergone
a change. It was transformed to the exact appearance of a common
lodging-house bedroom; a bed with green curtains occupied one corner;
and the window was blocked by the regulation table and mirror.
The door of a small closet here attracted the young man’s attention;
and striking a vesta, he opened it and entered. On a table several
wigs and beards were lying spread; about the walls hung an incongruous
display of suits and overcoats; and conspicuous among the last the young
man observed a large overall of the most costly sealskin. In a
flash his mind reverted to the advertisement in the Standard
newspaper. The great height of his lodger, the disproportionate
breadth of his shoulders, and the strange particulars of his instalment,
all pointed to the same conclusion.
The vesta had now burned to his fingers; and taking the coat upon his
arm, Somerset hastily returned to the lighted drawing-room. There,
with a mixture of fear and admiration, he pored upon its goodly proportions
and the regularity and softness of the pile. The sight of a large
pier-glass put another fancy in his head. He donned the fur-coat;
and standing before the mirror in an attitude suggestive of a Russian
prince, he thrust his hands into the ample pockets. There his
fingers encountered a folded journal. He drew it out, and recognised
the type and paper of the Standard; and at the same instant,
his eyes alighted on the offer of two hundred pounds. Plainly
then, his lodger, now no longer mysterious, had laid aside his coat
on the very day of the appearance of the advertisement.
He was thus standing, the tell-tale coat upon his back, the incriminating
paper in his hand, when the door opened and the tall lodger, with a
firm but somewhat pallid face, stepped into the room and closed the
door again behind him. For some time, the two looked upon each
other in perfect silence; then Mr. Jones moved forward to the table,
took a seat, and still without once changing the direction of his eyes,
addressed the young man.
‘You are right,’ he said. ‘It is for me the
blood money is offered. And now what will you do?’
It was a question to which Somerset was far from being able to reply.
Taken as he was at unawares, masquerading in the man’s own coat,
and surrounded by a whole arsenal of diabolical explosives, the keeper
of the lodging-house was silenced.
‘Yes,’ resumed the other, ‘I am he. I am that
man, whom with impotent hate and fear, they still hunt from den to den,
from disguise to disguise. Yes, my landlord, you have it in your
power, if you be poor, to lay the basis of your fortune; if you be unknown,
to capture honour at one snatch. You have hocussed an innocent
widow; and I find you here in my apartment, for whose use I pay you
in stamped money, searching my wardrobe, and your hand - shame, sir!
- your hand in my very pocket. You can now complete the cycle
of your ignominious acts, by what will be at once the simplest, the
safest, and the most remunerative.’ The speaker paused as
if to emphasise his words; and then, with a great change of tone and
manner, thus resumed: ‘And yet, sir, when I look upon your face,
I feel certain that I cannot be deceived: certain that in spite of all,
I have the honour and pleasure of speaking to a gentleman. Take
off my coat, sir - which but cumbers you. Divest yourself of this
confusion: that which is but thought upon, thank God, need be no burthen
to the conscience; we have all harboured guilty thoughts: and if it
flashed into your mind to sell my flesh and blood, my anguish in the
dock, and the sweat of my death agony - it was a thought, dear sir,
you were as incapable of acting on, as I of any further question of
your honour.’ At these words, the speaker, with a very open,
smiling countenance, like a forgiving father, offered Somerset his hand.
It was not in the young man’s nature to refuse forgiveness or
dissect generosity. He instantly, and almost without thought,
accepted the proffered grasp.
‘And now,’ resumed the lodger, ‘now that I hold in
mine your loyal hand, I lay by my apprehensions, I dismiss suspicion,
I go further - by an effort of will, I banish the memory of what is
past. How you came here, I care not: enough that you are here
- as my guest. Sit ye down; and let us, with your good permission,
improve acquaintance over a glass of excellent whisky.’
So speaking, he produced glasses and a bottle: and the pair pledged
each other in silence.
‘Confess,’ observed the smiling host, ‘you were surprised
at the appearance of the room.’
‘I was indeed,’ said Somerset; ‘nor can I imagine
the purpose of these changes.’
‘These,’ replied the conspirator, ‘are the devices
by which I continue to exist. Conceive me now, accused before
one of your unjust tribunals; conceive the various witnesses appearing,
and the singular variety of their reports! One will have visited
me in this drawing-room as it originally stood; a second finds it as
it is to-night; and to-morrow or next day, all may have been changed.
If you love romance (as artists do), few lives are more romantic than
that of the obscure individual now addressing you. Obscure yet
famous. Mine is an anonymous, infernal glory. By infamous
means, I work towards my bright purpose. I found the liberty and
peace of a poor country, desperately abused; the future smiles upon
that land; yet, in the meantime, I lead the existence of a hunted brute,
work towards appalling ends, and practice hell’s dexterities.’
Somerset, glass in hand, contemplated the strange fanatic before him,
and listened to his heated rhapsody, with indescribable bewilderment.
He looked him in the face with curious particularity; saw there the
marks of education; and wondered the more profoundly.
‘Sir,’ he said - ‘for I know not whether I should
still address you as Mr. Jones - ’
‘Jones, Breitman, Higginbotham, Pumpernickel, Daviot, Henderland,
by all or any of these you may address me,’ said the plotter;
‘for all I have at some time borne. Yet that which I most
prize, that which is most feared, hated, and obeyed, is not a name to
be found in your directories; it is not a name current in post-offices
or banks; and, indeed, like the celebrated clan M’Gregor, I may
justly describe myself as being nameless by day. But,’ he
continued, rising to his feet, ‘by night, and among my desperate
followers, I am the redoubted Zero.’
Somerset was unacquainted with the name, but he politely expressed surprise
and gratification. ‘I am to understand,’ he continued,
‘that, under this alias, you follow the profession of a dynamiter?’
{3}
The plotter had resumed his seat and now replenished the glasses.
‘I do,’ he said. ‘In this dark period of time,
a star - the star of dynamite - has risen for the oppressed; and among
those who practise its use, so thick beset with dangers and attended
by such incredible difficulties and disappointments, few have been more
assiduous, and not many - ’ He paused, and a shade of embarrassment
appeared upon his face - ‘not many have been more successful than
myself.’
‘I can imagine,’ observed Somerset, ‘that, from the
sweeping consequences looked for, the career is not devoid of interest.
You have, besides, some of the entertainment of the game of hide and
seek. But it would still seem to me - I speak as a layman - that
nothing could be simpler or safer than to deposit an infernal machine
and retire to an adjacent county to await the painful consequences.’
‘You speak, indeed,’ returned the plotter, with some evidence
of warmth, ‘you speak, indeed, most ignorantly. Do you make
nothing, then, of such a peril as we share this moment? Do you
think it nothing to occupy a house like this one, mined, menaced, and,
in a word, literally tottering to its fall?’
‘Good God!’ ejaculated Somerset.
‘And when you speak of ease,’ pursued Zero, ‘in this
age of scientific studies, you fill me with surprise. Are you
not aware that chemicals are proverbially fickle as woman, and clockwork
as capricious as the very devil? Do you see upon my brow these
furrows of anxiety? Do you observe the silver threads that mingle
with my hair? Clockwork, clockwork has stamped them on my brow
- chemicals have sprinkled them upon my locks! No, Mr. Somerset,’
he resumed, after a moment’s pause, his voice still quivering
with sensibility, ‘you must not suppose the dynamiter’s
life to be all gold. On the contrary, you cannot picture to yourself
the bloodshot vigils and the staggering disappointments of a life like
mine. I have toiled (let us say) for months, up early and down
late; my bag is ready, my clock set; a daring agent has hurried with
white face to deposit the instrument of ruin; we await the fall of England,
the massacre of thousands, the yell of fear and execration; and lo!
a snap like that of a child’s pistol, an offensive smell, and
the entire loss of so much time and plant! If,’ he concluded,
musingly, ‘we had been merely able to recover the lost bags, I
believe with but a touch or two, I could have remedied the peccant engine.
But what with the loss of plant and the almost insuperable scientific
difficulties of the task, our friends in France are almost ready to
desert the chosen medium. They propose, instead, to break up the
drainage system of cities and sweep off whole populations with the devastating
typhoid pestilence: a tempting and a scientific project: a process,
indiscriminate indeed, but of idyllical simplicity. I recognise
its elegance; but, sir, I have something of the poet in my nature; something,
possibly, of the tribune. And, for my small part, I shall remain
devoted to that more emphatic, more striking, and (if you please) more
popular method, of the explosive bomb. Yes,’ he cried, with
unshaken hope, ‘I will still continue, and, I feel it in my bosom,
I shall yet succeed.’
‘Two things I remark,’ said Somerset. ‘The first
somewhat staggers me. Have you, then - in all this course of life,
which you have sketched so vividly - have you not once succeeded?’
‘Pardon me,’ said Zero. ‘I have had one success.
You behold in me the author of the outrage of Red Lion Court.’
‘But if I remember right,’ objected Somerset, ‘the
thing was a fiasco. A scavenger’s barrow and some
copies of the Weekly Budget - these were the only victims.’
‘You will pardon me again,’ returned Zero with positive
asperity: ‘a child was injured.’
‘And that fitly brings me to my second point,’ said Somerset.
‘For I observed you to employ the word “indiscriminate.”
Now, surely, a scavenger’s barrow and a child (if child there
were) represent the very acme and top pin-point of indiscriminate, and,
pardon me, of ineffectual reprisal.’
‘Did I employ the word?’ asked Zero. ‘Well,
I will not defend it. But for efficiency, you touch on graver
matters; and before entering upon so vast a subject, permit me once
more to fill our glasses. Disputation is dry work,’ he added,
with a charming gaiety of manner.
Once more accordingly the pair pledged each other in a stalwart grog;
and Zero, leaning back with an air of some complacency, proceeded more
largely to develop his opinions.
‘The indiscriminate?’ he began. ‘War, my dear
sir, is indiscriminate. War spares not the child; it spares not
the barrow of the harmless scavenger. No more,’ he concluded,
beaming, ‘no more do I. Whatever may strike fear, whatever
may confound or paralyse the activities of the guilty nation, barrow
or child, imperial Parliament or excursion steamer, is welcome to my
simple plans. You are not,’ he inquired, with a shade of
sympathetic interest, ‘you are not, I trust, a believer?’
‘Sir, I believe in nothing,’ said the young man.
‘You are then,’ replied Zero, ‘in a position to grasp
my argument. We agree that humanity is the object, the glorious
triumph of humanity; and being pledged to labour for that end, and face
to face with the banded opposition of kings, parliaments, churches,
and the members of the force, who am I - who are we, dear sir - to affect
a nicety about the tools employed? You might, perhaps, expect
us to attack the Queen, the sinister Gladstone, the rigid Derby, or
the dexterous Granville; but there you would be in error. Our
appeal is to the body of the people; it is these that we would touch
and interest. Now, sir, have you observed the English housemaid?’
‘I should think I had,’ cried Somerset.
‘From a man of taste and a votary of art, I had expected it,’
returned the conspirator politely. ‘A type apart; a very
charming figure; and thoroughly adapted to our ends. The neat
cap, the clean print, the comely person, the engaging manner; her position
between classes, parents in one, employers in another; the probability
that she will have at least one sweet-heart, whose feelings we shall
address: - yes, I have a leaning - call it, if you will, a weakness
- for the housemaid. Not that I would be understood to despise
the nurse. For the child is a very interesting feature: I have
long since marked out the child as the sensitive point in society.’
He wagged his head, with a wise, pensive smile. ‘And talking,
sir, of children and of the perils of our trade, let me now narrate
to you a little incident of an explosive bomb, that fell out some weeks
ago under my own observation. It fell out thus.’
And Zero, leaning back in his chair, narrated the following simple tale.
ZERO’S TALE OF THE EXPLOSIVE BOMB. {4}
I dined by appointment with one of our most trusted agents, in a private
chamber at St. James’s Hall. You have seen the man: it was
M’Guire, the most chivalrous of creatures, but not himself expert
in our contrivances. Hence the necessity of our meeting; for I
need not remind you what enormous issues depend upon the nice adjustment
of the engine. I set our little petard for half an hour, the scene
of action being hard by; and the better to avert miscarriage, employed
a device, a recent invention of my own, by which the opening of the
Gladstone bag in which the bomb was carried, should instantly determine
the explosion. M’Guire was somewhat dashed by this arrangement,
which was new to him: and pointed out, with excellent, clear good sense,
that should he be arrested, it would probably involve him in the fall
of our opponents. But I was not to be moved, made a strong appeal
to his patriotism, gave him a good glass of whisky, and despatched him
on his glorious errand.
Our objective was the effigy of Shakespeare in Leicester Square: a spot,
I think, admirably chosen; not only for the sake of the dramatist, still
very foolishly claimed as a glory by the English race, in spite of his
disgusting political opinions; but from the fact that the seats in the
immediate neighbourhood are often thronged by children, errand-boys,
unfortunate young ladies of the poorer class and infirm old men - all
classes making a direct appeal to public pity, and therefore suitable
with our designs. As M’Guire drew near his heart was inflamed
by the most noble sentiment of triumph. Never had he seen the
garden so crowded; children, still stumbling in the impotence of youth,
ran to and fro, shouting and playing, round the pedestal; an old, sick
pensioner sat upon the nearest bench, a medal on his breast, a stick
with which he walked (for he was disabled by wounds) reclining on his
knee. Guilty England would thus be stabbed in the most delicate
quarters; the moment had, indeed, been well selected; and M’Guire,
with a radiant provision of the event, drew merrily nearer. Suddenly
his eye alighted on the burly form of a policeman, standing hard by
the effigy in an attitude of watch. My bold companion paused;
he looked about him closely; here and there, at different points of
the enclosure, other men stood or loitered, affecting an abstraction,
feigning to gaze upon the shrubs, feigning to talk, feigning to be weary
and to rest upon the benches. M’Guire was no child in these
affairs; he instantly divined one of the plots of the Machiavellian
Gladstone.
A chief difficulty with which we have to deal, is a certain nervousness
in the subaltern branches of the corps; as the hour of some design draws
near, these chicken-souled conspirators appear to suffer some revulsion
of intent; and frequently despatch to the authorities, not indeed specific
denunciations, but vague anonymous warnings. But for this purely
accidental circumstance, England had long ago been an historical expression.
On the receipt of such a letter, the Government lay a trap for their
adversaries, and surround the threatened spot with hirelings.
My blood sometimes boils in my veins, when I consider the case of those
who sell themselves for money in such a cause. True, thanks to
the generosity of our supporters, we patriots receive a very comfortable
stipend; I myself, of course, touch a salary which puts me quite beyond
the reach of any peddling, mercenary thoughts; M’Guire, again,
ere he joined our ranks, was on the brink of starving, and now, thank
God! receives a decent income. That is as it should be; the patriot
must not be diverted from his task by any base consideration; and the
distinction between our position and that of the police is too obvious
to be stated.
Plainly, however, our Leicester Square design had been divulged; the
Government had craftily filled the place with minions; even the pensioner
was not improbably a hireling in disguise; and our emissary, without
other aid or protection than the simple apparatus in his bag, found
himself confronted by force; brutal force; that strong hand which was
a character of the ages of oppression. Should he venture to deposit
the machine, it was almost certain that he would be observed and arrested;
a cry would arise; and there was just a fear that the police might not
be present in sufficient force, to protect him from the savagery of
the mob. The scheme must be delayed. He stood with his bag
on his arm, pretending to survey the front of the Alhambra, when there
flashed into his mind a thought to appal the bravest. The machine
was set; at the appointed hour, it must explode; and how, in the interval,
was he to be rid of it?
Put yourself, I beseech you, into the body of that patriot. There
he was, friendless and helpless; a man in the very flower of life, for
he is not yet forty; with long years of happiness before him; and now
condemned, in one moment, to a cruel and revolting death by dynamite!
The square, he said, went round him like a thaumatrope; he saw the Alhambra
leap into the air like a balloon; and reeled against the railing.
It is probable he fainted.
When he came to himself, a constable had him by the arm.
‘My God!’ he cried.
‘You seem to be unwell, sir,’ said the hireling.
‘I feel better now,’ cried poor M’Guire: and with
uneven steps, for the pavement of the square seemed to lurch and reel
under his footing, he fled from the scene of this disaster. Fled?
Alas, from what was he fleeing? Did he not carry that from which
he fled along with him? and had he the wings of the eagle, had he the
swiftness of the ocean winds, could he have been rapt into the uttermost
quarters of the earth, how should he escape the ruin that he carried?
We have heard of living men who have been fettered to the dead; the
grievance, soberly considered, is no more than sentimental; the case
is but a flea-bite to that of him who should be linked, like poor M’Guire,
to an explosive bomb.
A thought struck him in Green Street, like a dart through his liver:
suppose it were the hour already. He stopped as though he had
been shot, and plucked his watch out. There was a howling in his
ears, as loud as a winter tempest; his sight was now obscured as if
by a cloud, now, as by a lightning flash, would show him the very dust
upon the street. But so brief were these intervals of vision,
and so violently did the watch vibrate in his hands, that it was impossible
to distinguish the numbers on the dial. He covered his eyes for
a few seconds; and in that space, it seemed to him that he had fallen
to be a man of ninety. When he looked again, the watch-plate had
grown legible: he had twenty minutes. Twenty minutes, and no plan!
Green Street, at that time, was very empty; and he now observed a little
girl of about six drawing near to him, and as she came, kicking in front
of her, as children will, a piece of wood. She sang, too; and
something in her accent recalling him to the past, produced a sudden
clearness in his mind. Here was a God-sent opportunity!
‘My dear,’ said he, ‘would you like a present of a
pretty bag?’
The child cried aloud with joy and put out her hands to take it.
She had looked first at the bag, like a true child; but most unfortunately,
before she had yet received the fatal gift, her eyes fell directly on
M’Guire; and no sooner had she seen the poor gentleman’s
face, than she screamed out and leaped backward, as though she had seen
the devil. Almost at the same moment a woman appeared upon the
threshold of a neighbouring shop, and called upon the child in anger.
‘Come here, colleen,’ she said, ‘and don’t be
plaguing the poor old gentleman!’ With that she re-entered
the house, and the child followed her, sobbing aloud.
With the loss of this hope M’Guire’s reason swooned within
him. When next he awoke to consciousness, he was standing before
St. Martin’s-in-the-Fields, wavering like a drunken man; the passers-by
regarding him with eyes in which he read, as in a glass, an image of
the terror and horror that dwelt within his own.
‘I am afraid you are very ill, sir,’ observed a woman, stopping
and gazing hard in his face. ‘Can I do anything to help
you?’
‘Ill?’ said M’Guire. ‘O God!’
And then, recovering some shadow of his self-command, ‘Chronic,
madam,’ said he: ‘a long course of the dumb ague.
But since you are so compassionate - an errand that I lack the strength
to carry out,’ he gasped - ‘this bag to Portman Square.
Oh, compassionate woman, as you hope to be saved, as you are a mother,
in the name of your babes that wait to welcome you at home, oh, take
this bag to Portman Square! I have a mother, too,’ he added,
with a broken voice. ‘Number 19, Portman Square.’
I suppose he had expressed himself with too much energy of voice; for
the woman was plainly taken with a certain fear of him. ‘Poor
gentleman!’ said she. ‘If I were you, I would go home.’
And she left him standing there in his distress.
‘Home!’ thought M’Guire, ‘what a derision!’
What home was there for him, the victim of philanthropy? He thought
of his old mother, of his happy youth; of the hideous, rending pang
of the explosion; of the possibility that he might not be killed, that
he might be cruelly mangled, crippled for life, condemned to lifelong
pains, blinded perhaps, and almost surely deafened. Ah, you spoke
lightly of the dynamiter’s peril; but even waiving death, have
you realised what it is for a fine, brave young man of forty, to be
smitten suddenly with deafness, cut off from all the music of life,
and from the voice of friendship, and love? How little do we realise
the sufferings of others! Even your brutal Government, in the
heyday of its lust for cruelty, though it scruples not to hound the
patriot with spies, to pack the corrupt jury, to bribe the hangman,
and to erect the infamous gallows, would hesitate to inflict so horrible
a doom: not, I am well aware, from virtue, not from philanthropy, but
with the fear before it of the withering scorn of the good.
But I wander from M’Guire. From this dread glance into the
past and future, his thoughts returned at a bound upon the present.
How had he wandered there? and how long - oh, heavens! how long had
he been about it? He pulled out his watch; and found that but
three minutes had elapsed. It seemed too bright a thing to be
believed. He glanced at the church clock; and sure enough, it
marked an hour four minutes faster than the watch.
Of all that he endured, M’Guire declares that pang was the most
desolate. Till then, he had had one friend, one counsellor, in
whom he plenarily trusted; by whose advertisement, he numbered the minutes
that remained to him of life; on whose sure testimony, he could tell
when the time was come to risk the last adventure, to cast the bag away
from him, and take to flight. And now in what was he to place
reliance? His watch was slow; it might be losing time; if so,
in what degree? What limit could he set to its derangement? and
how much was it possible for a watch to lose in thirty minutes?
Five? ten? fifteen? It might be so; already, it seemed years since
he had left St. James’s Hall on this so promising enterprise;
at any moment, then, the blow was to be looked for.
In the face of this new distress, the wild disorder of his pulses settled
down; and a broken weariness succeeded, as though he had lived for centuries
and for centuries been dead. The buildings and the people in the
street became incredibly small, and far-away, and bright; London sounded
in his ears stilly, like a whisper; and the rattle of the cab that nearly
charged him down, was like a sound from Africa. Meanwhile, he
was conscious of a strange abstraction from himself; and heard and felt
his footfalls on the ground, as those of a very old, small, debile and
tragically fortuned man, whom he sincerely pitied.
As he was thus moving forward past the National Gallery, in a medium,
it seemed, of greater rarity and quiet than ordinary air, there slipped
into his mind the recollection of a certain entry in Whitcomb Street
hard by, where he might perhaps lay down his tragic cargo unremarked.
Thither, then, he bent his steps, seeming, as he went, to float above
the pavement; and there, in the mouth of the entry, he found a man in
a sleeved waistcoat, gravely chewing a straw. He passed him by,
and twice patrolled the entry, scouting for the barest chance; but the
man had faced about and continued to observe him curiously.
Another hope was gone. M’Guire reissued from the entry,
still followed by the wondering eyes of the man in the sleeved waistcoat.
He once more consulted his watch: there were but fourteen minutes left
to him. At that, it seemed as if a sudden, genial heat were spread
about his brain; for a second or two, he saw the world as red as blood;
and thereafter entered into a complete possession of himself, with an
incredible cheerfulness of spirits, prompting him to sing and chuckle
as he walked. And yet this mirth seemed to belong to things external;
and within, like a black and leaden-heavy kernel, he was conscious of
the weight upon his soul.
I care for nobody, no, not I,
And nobody cares for me,
he sang, and laughed at the appropriate burthen, so that the passengers
stared upon him on the street. And still the warmth seemed to
increase and to become more genial. What was life? he considered,
and what he, M’Guire? What even Erin, our green Erin?
All seemed so incalculably little that he smiled as he looked down upon
it. He would have given years, had he possessed them, for a glass
of spirits; but time failed, and he must deny himself this last indulgence.
At the corner of the Haymarket, he very jauntily hailed a hansom cab;
jumped in; bade the fellow drive him to a part of the Embankment, which
he named; and as soon as the vehicle was in motion, concealed the bag
as completely as he could under the vantage of the apron, and once more
drew out his watch. So he rode for five interminable minutes,
his heart in his mouth at every jolt, scarce able to possess his terrors,
yet fearing to wake the attention of the driver by too obvious a change
of plan, and willing, if possible, to leave him time to forget the Gladstone
bag.
At length, at the head of some stairs on the Embankment, he hailed;
the cab was stopped; and he alighted - with how glad a heart!
He thrust his hand into his pocket. All was now over; he had saved
his life; nor that alone, but he had engineered a striking act of dynamite;
for what could be more pictorial, what more effective, than the explosion
of a hansom cab, as it sped rapidly along the streets of London.
He felt in one pocket; then in another. The most crushing seizure
of despair descended on his soul; and struck into abject dumbness, he
stared upon the driver. He had not one penny.
‘Hillo,’ said the driver, ‘don’t seem well.’
‘Lost my money,’ said M’Guire, in tones so faint and
strange that they surprised his hearing.
The man looked through the trap. ‘I dessay,’ said
he: ‘you’ve left your bag.’
M’Guire half unconsciously fetched it out; and looking on that
black continent at arm’s length, withered inwardly and felt his
features sharpen as with mortal sickness.
‘This is not mine,’ said he. ‘Your last fare
must have left it. You had better take it to the station.’
‘Now look here,’ returned the cabman: ‘are you off
your chump? or am I?’
‘Well, then, I’ll tell you what,’ exclaimed M’Guire;
‘you take it for your fare!’
‘Oh, I dessay,’ replied the driver. ‘Anything
else? What’s in your bag? Open it, and let
me see.’
‘No, no,’ returned M’Guire. ‘Oh no, not
that. It’s a surprise; it’s prepared expressly: a
surprise for honest cabmen.’
‘No, you don’t,’ said the man, alighting from his
perch, and coming very close to the unhappy patriot. ‘You’re
either going to pay my fare, or get in again and drive to the office.’
It was at this supreme hour of his distress, that M’Guire spied
the stout figure of one Godall, a tobacconist of Rupert Street, drawing
near along the Embankment. The man was not unknown to him; he
had bought of his wares, and heard him quoted for the soul of liberality;
and such was now the nearness of his peril, that even at such a straw
of hope, he clutched with gratitude.
‘Thank God!’ he cried. ‘Here comes a friend
of mine. I’ll borrow.’ And he dashed to meet
the tradesman. ‘Sir,’ said he, ‘Mr. Godall,
I have dealt with you - you doubtless know my face - calamities for
which I cannot blame myself have overwhelmed me. Oh, sir, for
the love of innocence, for the sake of the bonds of humanity, and as
you hope for mercy at the throne of grace, lend me two-and-six!’
‘I do not recognise your face,’ replied Mr. Godall; ‘but
I remember the cut of your beard, which I have the misfortune to dislike.
Here, sir, is a sovereign; which I very willingly advance to you, on
the single condition that you shave your chin.’
M’Guire grasped the coin without a word; cast it to the cabman,
calling out to him to keep the change; bounded down the steps, flung
the bag far forth into the river, and fell headlong after it.
He was plucked from a watery grave, it is believed, by the hands of
Mr. Godall. Even as he was being hoisted dripping to the shore,
a dull and choked explosion shook the solid masonry of the Embankment,
and far out in the river a momentary fountain rose and disappeared.
THE SUPERFLUOUS MANSION (Continued)
Somerset in vain strove to attach a meaning to these words.
He had, in the meanwhile, applied himself assiduously to the flagon;
the plotter began to melt in twain, and seemed to expand and hover on
his seat; and with a vague sense of nightmare, the young man rose unsteadily
to his feet, and, refusing the proffer of a third grog, insisted that
the hour was late and he must positively get to bed.
‘Dear me,’ observed Zero, ‘I find you very temperate.
But I will not be oppressive. Suffice it that we are now fast
friends; and, my dear landlord, au revoir!’
So saying the plotter once more shook hands; and with the politest ceremonies,
and some necessary guidance, conducted the bewildered young gentleman
to the top of the stair.
Precisely, how he got to bed, was a point on which Somerset remained
in utter darkness; but the next morning when, at a blow, he started
broad awake, there fell upon his mind a perfect hurricane of horror
and wonder. That he should have suffered himself to be led into
the semblance of intimacy with such a man as his abominable lodger,
appeared, in the cold light of day, a mystery of human weakness.
True, he was caught in a situation that might have tested the aplomb
of Talleyrand. That was perhaps a palliation; but it was no excuse.
For so wholesale a capitulation of principle, for such a fall into criminal
familiarity, no excuse indeed was possible; nor any remedy, but to withdraw
at once from the relation.
As soon as he was dressed, he hurried upstairs, determined on a rupture.
Zero hailed him with the warmth of an old friend.
‘Come in,’ he cried, ‘dear Mr. Somerset! Come
in, sit down, and, without ceremony, join me at my morning meal.’
‘Sir,’ said Somerset, ‘you must permit me first to
disengage my honour. Last night, I was surprised into a certain
appearance of complicity; but once for all, let me inform you that I
regard you and your machinations with unmingled horror and disgust,
and I will leave no stone unturned to crush your vile conspiracy.’
‘My dear fellow,’ replied Zero, with an air of some complacency,
‘I am well accustomed to these human weaknesses. Disgust?
I have felt it myself; it speedily wears off. I think none the
worse, I think the more of you, for this engaging frankness. And
in the meanwhile, what are you to do? You find yourself, if I
interpret rightly, in very much the same situation as Charles the Second
(possibly the least degraded of your British sovereigns) when he was
taken into the confidence of the thief. To denounce me, is out
of the question; and what else can you attempt? No, dear Mr. Somerset,
your hands are tied; and you find yourself condemned, under pain of
behaving like a cad, to be that same charming and intellectual companion
who delighted me last night.’
‘At least,’ cried Somerset, ‘I can, and do, order
you to leave this house.’
‘Ah!’ cried the plotter, ‘but there I fail to follow
you. You may, if you please, enact the part of Judas; but if,
as I suppose, you recoil from that extremity of meanness, I am, on my
side, far too intelligent to leave these lodgings, in which I please
myself exceedingly, and from which you lack the power to drive me.
No, no, dear sir; here I am, and here I propose to stay.’
‘I repeat,’ cried Somerset, beside himself with a sense
of his own weakness, ‘I repeat that I give you warning.
I am the master of this house; and I emphatically give you warning.’
‘A week’s warning?’ said the imperturbable conspirator.
‘Very well: we will talk of it a week from now. That is
arranged; and in the meanwhile, I observe my breakfast growing cold.
Do, dear Mr. Somerset, since you find yourself condemned, for a week
at least, to the society of a very interesting character, display some
of that open favour, some of that interest in life’s obscurer
sides, which stamp the character of the true artist. Hang me,
if you will, to-morrow; but to-day show yourself divested of the scruples
of the burgess, and sit down pleasantly to share my meal.’
‘Man!’ cried Somerset, ‘do you understand my sentiments?’
‘Certainly,’ replied Zero; ‘and I respect them!
Would you be outdone in such a contest? will you alone be partial? and
in this nineteenth century, cannot two gentlemen of education agree
to differ on a point of politics? Come, sir: all your hard words
have left me smiling; judge then, which of us is the philosopher!’
Somerset was a young man of a very tolerant disposition and by nature
easily amenable to sophistry. He threw up his hands with a gesture
of despair, and took the seat to which the conspirator invited him.
The meal was excellent; the host not only affable, but primed with curious
information. He seemed, indeed, like one who had too long endured
the torture of silence, to exult in the most wholesale disclosures.
The interest of what he had to tell was great; his character, besides,
developed step by step; and Somerset, as the time fled, not only outgrew
some of the discomfort of his false position, but began to regard the
conspirator with a familiarity that verged upon contempt. In any
circumstances, he had a singular inability to leave the society in which
he found himself; company, even if distasteful, held him captive like
a limed sparrow; and on this occasion, he suffered hour to follow hour,
was easily persuaded to sit down once more to table, and did not even
attempt to withdraw till, on the approach of evening, Zero, with many
apologies, dismissed his guest. His fellow-conspirators, the dynamiter
handsomely explained, as they were unacquainted with the sterling qualities
of the young man, would be alarmed at the sight of a strange face.
As soon as he was alone, Somerset fell back upon the humour of the morning.
He raged at the thought of his facility; he paced the dining-room, forming
the sternest resolutions for the future; he wrung the hand which had
been dishonoured by the touch of an assassin; and among all these whirling
thoughts, there flashed in from time to time, and ever with a chill
of fear, the thought of the confounded ingredients with which the house
was stored. A powder magazine seemed a secure smoking-room alongside
of the Superfluous Mansion.
He sought refuge in flight, in locomotion, in the flowing bowl.
As long as the bars were open, he travelled from one to another, seeking
light, safety, and the companionship of human faces; when these resources
failed him, he fell back on the belated baked-potato man; and at length,
still pacing the streets, he was goaded to fraternise with the police.
Alas, with what a sense of guilt he conversed with these guardians of
the law; how gladly had he wept upon their ample bosoms; and how the
secret fluttered to his lips and was still denied an exit! Fatigue
began at last to triumph over remorse; and about the hour of the first
milkman, he returned to the door of the mansion; looked at it with a
horrid expectation, as though it should have burst that instant into
flames; drew out his key, and when his foot already rested on the steps,
once more lost heart and fled for repose to the grisly shelter of a
coffee-shop.
It was on the stroke of noon when he awoke. Dismally searching
in his pockets, he found himself reduced to half-a-crown; and when he
had paid the price of his distasteful couch, saw himself obliged to
return to the Superfluous Mansion. He sneaked into the hall and
stole on tiptoe to the cupboard where he kept his money. Yet half
a minute, he told himself, and he would be free for days from his obseding
lodger, and might decide at leisure on the course he should pursue.
But fate had otherwise designed: there came a tap at the door and Zero
entered.
‘Have I caught you?’ he cried, with innocent gaiety.
‘Dear fellow, I was growing quite impatient.’ And
on the speaker’s somewhat stolid face, there came a glow of genuine
affection. ‘I am so long unused to have a friend,’
he continued, ‘that I begin to be afraid I may prove jealous.’
And he wrung the hand of his landlord.
Somerset was, of all men, least fit to deal with such a greeting.
To reject these kind advances was beyond his strength. That he
could not return cordiality for cordiality, was already almost more
than he could carry. That inequality between kind sentiments which,
to generous characters, will always seem to be a sort of guilt, oppressed
him to the ground; and he stammered vague and lying words.
‘That is all right,’ cried Zero - ‘that is as it should
be - say no more! I had a vague alarm; I feared you had deserted
me; but I now own that fear to have been unworthy, and apologise.
To doubt of your forgiveness were to repeat my sin. Come, then;
dinner waits; join me again and tell me your adventures of the night.’
Kindness still sealed the lips of Somerset; and he suffered himself
once more to be set down to table with his innocent and criminal acquaintance.
Once more, the plotter plunged up to the neck in damaging disclosures:
now it would be the name and biography of an individual, now the address
of some important centre, that rose, as if by accident, upon his lips;
and each word was like another turn of the thumbscrew to his unhappy
guest. Finally, the course of Zero’s bland monologue led
him to the young lady of two days ago: that young lady, who had flashed
on Somerset for so brief a while but with so conquering a charm; and
whose engaging grace, communicative eyes, and admirable conduct of the
sweeping skirt, remained imprinted on his memory.
‘You saw her?’ said Zero. ‘Beautiful, is she
not? She, too, is one of ours: a true enthusiast: nervous, perhaps,
in presence of the chemicals; but in matters of intrigue, the very soul
of skill and daring. Lake, Fonblanque, de Marly, Valdevia, such
are some of the names that she employs; her true name - but there, perhaps,
I go too far. Suffice it, that it is to her I owe my present lodging,
and, dear Somerset, the pleasure of your acquaintance. It appears
she knew the house. You see dear fellow, I make no concealment:
all that you can care to hear, I tell you openly.’
‘For God’s sake,’ cried the wretched Somerset, ‘hold
your tongue! You cannot imagine how you torture me!’
A shade of serious discomposure crossed the open countenance of Zero.
‘There are times,’ he said, ‘when I begin to fancy
that you do not like me. Why, why, dear Somerset, this lack of
cordiality? I am depressed; the touchstone of my life draws near;
and if I fail’ - he gloomily nodded - ‘from all the height
of my ambitious schemes, I fall, dear boy, into contempt. These
are grave thoughts, and you may judge my need of your delightful company.
Innocent prattler, you relieve the weight of my concerns. And
yet . . . and yet . . .’ The speaker pushed away his plate,
and rose from table. ‘Follow me,’ said he, ‘follow
me. My mood is on; I must have air, I must behold the plain of
battle.’
So saying, he led the way hurriedly to the top flat of the mansion,
and thence, by ladder and trap, to a certain leaded platform, sheltered
at one end by a great stalk of chimneys and occupying the actual summit
of the roof. On both sides, it bordered, without parapet or rail,
on the incline of slates; and, northward above all, commanded an extensive
view of housetops, and rising through the smoke, the distant spires
of churches.
‘Here,’ cried Zero, ‘you behold this field of city,
rich, crowded, laughing with the spoil of continents; but soon, how
soon, to be laid low! Some day, some night, from this coign of
vantage, you shall perhaps be startled by the detonation of the judgment
gun - not sharp and empty like the crack of cannon, but deep-mouthed
and unctuously solemn. Instantly thereafter, you shall behold
the flames break forth. Ay,’ he cried, stretching forth
his hand, ‘ay, that will be a day of retribution. Then shall
the pallid constable flee side by side with the detected thief.
Blaze!’ he cried, ‘blaze, derided city! Fall, flatulent
monarchy, fall like Dagon!’
With these words his foot slipped upon the lead; and but for Somerset’s
quickness, he had been instantly precipitated into space. Pale
as a sheet, and limp as a pocket-handkerchief, he was dragged from the
edge of downfall by one arm; helped, or rather carried, down the ladder;
and deposited in safety on the attic landing. Here he began to
come to himself, wiped his brow, and at length, seizing Somerset’s
hand in both of his, began to utter his acknowledgments.
‘This seals it,’ said he. ‘Ours is a life and
death connection. You have plucked me from the jaws of death;
and if I were before attracted by your character, judge now of the ardour
of my gratitude and love! But I perceive I am still greatly shaken.
Lend me, I beseech you, lend me your arm as far as my apartment.’
A dram of spirits restored the plotter to something of his customary
self-possession; and he was standing, glass in hand and genially convalescent,
when his eye was attracted by the dejection of the unfortunate young
man.
‘Good heavens, dear Somerset,’ he cried, ‘what ails
you? Let me offer you a touch of spirits.’
But Somerset had fallen below the reach of this material comfort.
‘Let me be,’ he said. ‘I am lost; you have caught
me in the toils. Up to this moment, I have lived all my life in
the most reckless manner, and done exactly what I pleased, with the
most perfect innocence. And now - what am I? Are you so
blind and wooden that you do not see the loathing you inspire me with?
Is it possible you can suppose me willing to continue to exist upon
such terms? To think,’ he cried, ‘that a young man,
guilty of no fault on earth but amiability, should find himself involved
in such a damned imbroglio!’ And placing his knuckles in
his eyes, Somerset rolled upon the sofa.
‘My God,’ said Zero, ‘is this possible? And
I so filled with tenderness and interest! Can it be, dear Somerset,
that you are under the empire of these out-worn scruples? or that you
judge a patriot by the morality of the religious tract? I thought
you were a good agnostic.’
‘Mr. Jones,’ said Somerset, ‘it is in vain to argue.
I boast myself a total disbeliever, not only in revealed religion, but
in the data, method, and conclusions of the whole of ethics. Well!
what matters it? what signifies a form of words? I regard you
as a reptile, whom I would rejoice, whom I long, to stamp under my heel.
You would blow up others? Well then, understand: I want, with
every circumstance of infamy and agony, to blow up you!’
‘Somerset, Somerset!’ said Zero, turning very pale, ‘this
is wrong; this is very wrong. You pain, you wound me, Somerset.’
‘Give me a match!’ cried Somerset wildly. ‘Let
me set fire to this incomparable monster! Let me perish with him
in his fall!’
‘For God’s sake,’ cried Zero, clutching hold of the
young man, ‘for God’s sake command yourself! We stand
upon the brink; death yawns around us; a man - a stranger in this foreign
land - one whom you have called your friend - ’
‘Silence!’ cried Somerset, ‘you are no friend, no
friend of mine. I look on you with loathing, like a toad: my flesh
creeps with physical repulsion; my soul revolts against the sight of
you.’
Zero burst into tears. ‘Alas!’ he sobbed, ‘this
snaps the last link that bound me to humanity. My friend disowns
- he insults me. I am indeed accurst.’
Somerset stood for an instant staggered by this sudden change of front.
The next moment, with a despairing gesture, he fled from the room and
from the house. The first dash of his escape carried him hard
upon half-way to the next police-office: but presently began to droop;
and before he reached the house of lawful intervention, he fell once
more among doubtful counsels. Was he an agnostic? had he a right
to act? Away with such nonsense, and let Zero perish! ran his
thoughts. And then again: had he not promised, had he not shaken
hands and broken bread? and that with open eyes? and if so how could
he take action, and not forfeit honour? But honour? what was honour?
A figment, which, in the hot pursuit of crime, he ought to dash aside.
Ay, but crime? A figment, too, which his enfranchised intellect
discarded. All day, he wandered in the parks, a prey to whirling
thoughts; all night, patrolled the city; and at the peep of day he sat
down by the wayside in the neighbourhood of Peckham and bitterly wept.
His gods had fallen. He who had chosen the broad, daylit, unencumbered
paths of universal scepticism, found himself still the bondslave of
honour. He who had accepted life from a point of view as lofty
as the predatory eagle’s, though with no design to prey; he who
had clearly recognised the common moral basis of war, of commercial
competition, and of crime; he who was prepared to help the escaping
murderer or to embrace the impenitent thief, found, to the overthrow
of all his logic, that he objected to the use of dynamite. The
dawn crept among the sleeping villas and over the smokeless fields of
city; and still the unfortunate sceptic sobbed over his fall from consistency.
At length, he rose and took the rising sun to witness. ‘There
is no question as to fact,’ he cried; ‘right and wrong are
but figments and the shadow of a word; but for all that, there are certain
things that I cannot do, and there are certain others that I will not
stand.’ Thereupon he decided to return to make one last
effort of persuasion, and, if he could not prevail on Zero to desist
from his infernal trade, throw delicacy to the winds, give the plotter
an hour’s start, and denounce him to the police. Fast as
he went, being winged by this resolution, it was already well on in
the morning when he came in sight of the Superfluous Mansion.
Tripping down the steps, was the young lady of the various aliases;
and he was surprised to see upon her countenance the marks of anger
and concern.
‘Madam,’ he began, yielding to impulse and with no clear
knowledge of what he was to add.
But at the sound of his voice she seemed to experience a shock of fear
or horror; started back; lowered her veil with a sudden movement; and
fled, without turning, from the square.
Here then, we step aside a moment from following the fortunes of Somerset,
and proceed to relate the strange and romantic episode of THE BROWN
BOX.
DESBOROUGH’S ADVENTURE: THE BROWN BOX
Mr. Harry Desborough lodged in the fine and grave old quarter of
Bloomsbury, roared about on every side by the high tides of London,
but itself rejoicing in romantic silences and city peace. It was
in Queen Square that he had pitched his tent, next door to the Children’s
Hospital, on your left hand as you go north: Queen Square, sacred to
humane and liberal arts, whence homes were made beautiful, where the
poor were taught, where the sparrows were plentiful and loud, and where
groups of patient little ones would hover all day long before the hospital,
if by chance they might kiss their hand or speak a word to their sick
brother at the window. Desborough’s room was on the first
floor and fronted to the square; but he enjoyed besides, a right by
which he often profited, to sit and smoke upon a terrace at the back,
which looked down upon a fine forest of back gardens, and was in turn
commanded by the windows of an empty room.
On the afternoon of a warm day, Desborough sauntered forth upon this
terrace, somewhat out of hope and heart, for he had been now some weeks
on the vain quest of situations, and prepared for melancholy and tobacco.
Here, at least, he told himself that he would be alone; for, like most
youths, who are neither rich, nor witty, nor successful, he rather shunned
than courted the society of other men. Even as he expressed the
thought, his eye alighted on the window of the room that looked upon
the terrace; and to his surprise and annoyance, he beheld it curtained
with a silken hanging. It was like his luck, he thought; his privacy
was gone, he could no longer brood and sigh unwatched, he could no longer
suffer his discouragement to find a vent in words or soothe himself
with sentimental whistling; and in the irritation of the moment, he
struck his pipe upon the rail with unnecessary force. It was an
old, sweet, seasoned briar-root, glossy and dark with long employment,
and justly dear to his fancy. What, then, was his chagrin, when
the head snapped from the stem, leaped airily in space, and fell and
disappeared among the lilacs of the garden?
He threw himself savagely into the garden chair, pulled out the story-paper
which he had brought with him to read, tore off a fragment of the last
sheet, which contains only the answers to correspondents, and set himself
to roll a cigarette. He was no master of the art; again and again,
the paper broke between his fingers and the tobacco showered upon the
ground; and he was already on the point of angry resignation, when the
window swung slowly inward, the silken curtain was thrust aside, and
a lady, somewhat strangely attired, stepped forth upon the terrace.
‘Señorito,’ said she, and there was a rich thrill
in her voice, like an organ note, ‘Señorito, you are in
difficulties. Suffer me to come to your assistance.’
With the words, she took the paper and tobacco from his unresisting
hands; and with a facility that, in Desborough’s eyes, seemed
magical, rolled and presented him a cigarette. He took it, still
seated, still without a word; staring with all his eyes upon that apparition.
Her face was warm and rich in colour; in shape, it was that piquant
triangle, so innocently sly, so saucily attractive, so rare in our more
northern climates; her eyes were large, starry, and visited by changing
lights; her hair was partly covered by a lace mantilla, through which
her arms, bare to the shoulder, gleamed white; her figure, full and
soft in all the womanly contours, was yet alive and active, light with
excess of life, and slender by grace of some divine proportion.
‘You do not like my cigarrito, Señor?’ she asked.
‘Yet it is better made than yours.’ At that she laughed,
and her laughter trilled in his ear like music; but the next moment
her face fell. ‘I see,’ she cried. ‘It
is my manner that repels you. I am too constrained, too cold.
I am not,’ she added, with a more engaging air, ‘I am not
the simple English maiden I appear.’
‘Oh!’ murmured Harry, filled with inexpressible thoughts.
‘In my own dear land,’ she pursued, ‘things are differently
ordered. There, I must own, a girl is bound by many and rigorous
restrictions; little is permitted her; she learns to be distant, she
learns to appear forbidding. But here, in free England - oh, glorious
liberty!’ she cried, and threw up her arms with a gesture of inimitable
grace - ‘here there are no fetters; here the woman may dare to
be herself entirely, and the men, the chivalrous men - is it not written
on the very shield of your nation, honi soit? Ah, it is
hard for me to learn, hard for me to dare to be myself. You must
not judge me yet awhile; I shall end by conquering this stiffness, I
shall end by growing English. Do I speak the language well?’
‘Perfectly - oh, perfectly!’ said Harry, with a fervency
of conviction worthy of a graver subject.
‘Ah, then,’ she said, ‘I shall soon learn; English
blood ran in my father’s veins; and I have had the advantage of
some training in your expressive tongue. If I speak already without
accent, with my thorough English appearance, there is nothing left to
change except my manners.’
‘Oh no,’ said Desborough. ‘Oh pray not!
I - madam - ’
‘I am,’ interrupted the lady, ‘the Señorita
Teresa Valdevia. The evening air grows chill. Adios, Señorito.’
And before Harry could stammer out a word, she had disappeared into
her room.
He stood transfixed, the cigarette still unlighted in his hand.
His thoughts had soared above tobacco, and still recalled and beautified
the image of his new acquaintance. Her voice re-echoed in his
memory; her eyes, of which he could not tell the colour, haunted his
soul. The clouds had risen at her coming, and he beheld a new-created
world. What she was, he could not fancy, but he adored her.
Her age, he durst not estimate; fearing to find her older than himself,
and thinking sacrilege to couple that fair favour with the thought of
mortal changes. As for her character, beauty to the young is always
good. So the poor lad lingered late upon the terrace, stealing
timid glances at the curtained window, sighing to the gold laburnums,
rapt into the country of romance; and when at length he entered and
sat down to dine, on cold boiled mutton and a pint of ale, he feasted
on the food of gods.
Next day when he returned to the terrace, the window was a little ajar,
and he enjoyed a view of the lady’s shoulder, as she sat patiently
sewing and all unconscious of his presence. On the next, he had
scarce appeared when the window opened, and the Señorita tripped
forth into the sunlight, in a morning disorder, delicately neat, and
yet somehow foreign, tropical, and strange. In one hand she held
a packet.
‘Will you try,’ she said, ‘some of my father’s
tobacco - from dear Cuba? There, as I suppose you know, all smoke,
ladies as well as gentlemen. So you need not fear to annoy me.
The fragrance will remind me of home. My home, Señor, was
by the sea.’ And as she uttered these few words, Desborough,
for the first time in his life, realised the poetry of the great deep.
‘Awake or asleep, I dream of it: dear home, dear Cuba!’
‘But some day,’ said Desborough, with an inward pang, ‘some
day you will return?’
‘ Never!’ she cried; ‘ah, never, in Heaven’s
name!’
‘Are you then resident for life in England?’ he inquired,
with a strange lightening of spirit.
‘You ask too much, for you ask more than I know,’ she answered
sadly; and then, resuming her gaiety of manner: ‘But you have
not tried my Cuban tobacco,’ she said.
‘Señorita,’ said he, shyly abashed by some shadow
of coquetry in her manner, ‘whatever comes to me - you - I mean,’
he concluded, deeply flushing, ‘that I have no doubt the tobacco
is delightful.’
‘Ah, Señor,’ she said, with almost mournful gravity,
‘you seemed so simple and good, and already you are trying to
pay compliments - and besides,’ she added, brightening, with a
quick upward glance, into a smile, ‘you do it so badly!
English gentlemen, I used to hear, could be fast friends, respectful,
honest friends; could be companions, comforters, if the need arose,
or champions, and yet never encroach. Do not seek to please me
by copying the graces of my countrymen. Be yourself: the frank,
kindly, honest English gentleman that I have heard of since my childhood
and still longed to meet.’
Harry, much bewildered, and far from clear as to the manners of the
Cuban gentlemen, strenuously disclaimed the thought of plagiarism.
‘Your national seriousness of bearing best becomes you, Señor,’
said the lady. ‘See!’ marking a line with her dainty,
slippered foot, ‘thus far it shall be common ground; there, at
my window-sill, begins the scientific frontier. If you choose,
you may drive me to my forts; but if, on the other hand, we are to be
real English friends, I may join you here when I am not too sad; or,
when I am yet more graciously inclined, you may draw your chair beside
the window and teach me English customs, while I work. You will
find me an apt scholar, for my heart is in the task.’ She
laid her hand lightly upon Harry’s arm, and looked into his eyes.
‘Do you know,’ said she, ‘I am emboldened to believe
that I have already caught something of your English aplomb? Do
you not perceive a change, Señor? Slight, perhaps, but
still a change? Is my deportment not more open, more free, more
like that of the dear “British Miss” than when you saw me
first?’ She gave a radiant smile; withdrew her hand from
Harry’s arm; and before the young man could formulate in words
the eloquent emotions that ran riot through his brain - with an ‘Adios,
Señor: good-night, my English friend,’ she vanished from
his sight behind the curtain.
The next day Harry consumed an ounce of tobacco in vain upon the neutral
terrace; neither sight nor sound rewarded him, and the dinner-hour summoned
him at length from the scene of disappointment. On the next it
rained; but nothing, neither business nor weather, neither prospective
poverty nor present hardship, could now divert the young man from the
service of his lady; and wrapt in a long ulster, with the collar raised,
he took his stand against the balustrade, awaiting fortune, the picture
of damp and discomfort to the eye, but glowing inwardly with tender
and delightful ardours. Presently the window opened, and the fair
Cuban, with a smile imperfectly dissembled, appeared upon the sill.
‘Come here,’ she said, ‘here, beside my window.
The small verandah gives a belt of shelter.’ And she graciously
handed him a folding-chair.
As he sat down, visibly aglow with shyness and delight, a certain bulkiness
in his pocket reminded him that he was not come empty-handed.
‘I have taken the liberty,’ said he, ‘of bringing
you a little book. I thought of you, when I observed it on the
stall, because I saw it was in Spanish. The man assured me it
was by one of the best authors, and quite proper.’ As he
spoke, he placed the little volume in her hand. Her eyes fell
as she turned the pages, and a flush rose and died again upon her cheeks,
as deep as it was fleeting. ‘You are angry,’ he cried
in agony. ‘I have presumed.’
‘No, Señor, it is not that,’ returned the lady.
‘I - ’ and a flood of colour once more mounted to her brow
- ‘I am confused and ashamed because I have deceived you.
Spanish,’ she began, and paused - ‘Spanish is, of course,
my native tongue,’ she resumed, as though suddenly taking courage;
‘and this should certainly put the highest value on your thoughtful
present; but alas, sir, of what use is it to me? And how shall
I confess to you the truth - the humiliating truth - that I cannot read?’
As Harry’s eyes met hers in undisguised amazement, the fair Cuban
seemed to shrink before his gaze. ‘Read?’ repeated
Harry. ‘You!’
She pushed the window still more widely open with a large and noble
gesture. ‘Enter, Señor,’ said she. ‘The
time has come to which I have long looked forward, not without alarm;
when I must either fear to lose your friendship, or tell you without
disguise the story of my life.’
It was with a sentiment bordering on devotion, that Harry passed the
window. A semi-barbarous delight in form and colour had presided
over the studied disorder of the room in which he found himself.
It was filled with dainty stuffs, furs and rugs and scarves of brilliant
hues, and set with elegant and curious trifles-fans on the mantelshelf,
an antique lamp upon a bracket, and on the table a silver-mounted bowl
of cocoa-nut about half full of unset jewels. The fair Cuban,
herself a gem of colour and the fit masterpiece for that rich frame,
motioned Harry to a seat, and sinking herself into another, thus began
her history.
STORY OF THE FAIR CUBAN
I am not what I seem. My father drew his descent, on the one
hand, from grandees of Spain, and on the other, through the maternal
line, from the patriot Bruce. My mother, too, was the descendant
of a line of kings; but, alas! these kings were African. She was
fair as the day: fairer than I, for I inherited a darker strain of blood
from the veins of my European father; her mind was noble, her manners
queenly and accomplished; and seeing her more than the equal of her
neighbours, and surrounded by the most considerate affection and respect,
I grew up to adore her, and when the time came, received her last sigh
upon my lips, still ignorant that she was a slave, and alas! my father’s
mistress. Her death, which befell me in my sixteenth year, was
the first sorrow I had known: it left our home bereaved of its attractions,
cast a shade of melancholy on my youth, and wrought in my father a tragic
and durable change. Months went by; with the elasticity of my
years, I regained some of the simple mirth that had before distinguished
me; the plantation smiled with fresh crops; the negroes on the estate
had already forgotten my mother and transferred their simple obedience
to myself; but still the cloud only darkened on the brows of Señor
Valdevia. His absences from home had been frequent even in the
old days, for he did business in precious gems in the city of Havana;
they now became almost continuous; and when he returned, it was but
for the night and with the manner of a man crushed down by adverse fortune.
The place where I was born and passed my days was an isle set in the
Caribbean Sea, some half-hour’s rowing from the coasts of Cuba.
It was steep, rugged, and, except for my father’s family and plantation,
uninhabited and left to nature. The house, a low building surrounded
by spacious verandahs, stood upon a rise of ground and looked across
the sea to Cuba. The breezes blew about it gratefully, fanned
us as we lay swinging in our silken hammocks, and tossed the boughs
and flowers of the magnolia. Behind and to the left, the quarter
of the negroes and the waving fields of the plantation covered an eighth
part of the surface of the isle. On the right and closely bordering
on the garden, lay a vast and deadly swamp, densely covered with wood,
breathing fever, dotted with profound sloughs, and inhabited by poisonous
oysters, man-eating crabs, snakes, alligators, and sickly fishes.
Into the recesses of that jungle, none could penetrate but those of
African descent; an invisible, unconquerable foe lay there in wait for
the European; and the air was death.
One morning (from which I must date the beginning of my ruinous misfortune)
I left my room a little after day, for in that warm climate all are
early risers, and found not a servant to attend upon my wants.
I made the circuit of the house, still calling: and my surprise had
almost changed into alarm, when coming at last into a large verandahed
court, I found it thronged with negroes. Even then, even when
I was amongst them, not one turned or paid the least regard to my arrival.
They had eyes and ears for but one person: a woman, richly and tastefully
attired; of elegant carriage, and a musical speech; not so much old
in years, as worn and marred by self-indulgence: her face, which was
still attractive, stamped with the most cruel passions, her eye burning
with the greed of evil. It was not from her appearance, I believe,
but from some emanation of her soul, that I recoiled in a kind of fainting
terror; as we hear of plants that blight and snakes that fascinate,
the woman shocked and daunted me. But I was of a brave nature;
trod the weakness down; and forcing my way through the slaves, who fell
back before me in embarrassment, as though in the presence of rival
mistresses, I asked, in imperious tones: ‘Who is this person?’
A slave girl, to whom I had been kind, whispered in my ear to have a
care, for that was Madam Mendizabal; but the name was new to me.
In the meanwhile the woman, applying a pair of glasses to her eyes,
studied me with insolent particularity from head to foot.
‘Young woman,’ said she, at last, ‘I have had a great
experience in refractory servants, and take a pride in breaking them.
You really tempt me; and if I had not other affairs, and these of more
importance, on my hand, I should certainly buy you at your father’s
sale.’
‘Madam - ’ I began, but my voice failed me.
‘Is it possible that you do not know your position?’ she
returned, with a hateful laugh. ‘How comical! Positively,
I must buy her. Accomplishments, I suppose?’ she added,
turning to the servants.
Several assured her that the young mistress had been brought up like
any lady, for so it seemed in their inexperience.
‘She would do very well for my place of business in Havana,’
said the Señora Mendizabal, once more studying me through her
glasses; ‘and I should take a pleasure,’ she pursued, more
directly addressing myself, ‘in bringing you acquainted with a
whip.’ And she smiled at me with a savoury lust of cruelty
upon her face.
At this, I found expression. Calling by name upon the servants,
I bade them turn this woman from the house, fetch her to the boat, and
set her back upon the mainland. But with one voice, they protested
that they durst not obey, coming close about me, pleading and beseeching
me to be more wise; and, when I insisted, rising higher in passion and
speaking of this foul intruder in the terms she had deserved, they fell
back from me as from one who had blasphemed. A superstitious reverence
plainly encircled the stranger; I could read it in their changed demeanour,
and in the paleness that prevailed upon the natural colour of their
faces; and their fear perhaps reacted on myself. I looked again
at Madam Mendizabal. She stood perfectly composed, watching my
face through her glasses with a smile of scorn; and at the sight of
her assured superiority to all my threats, a cry broke from my lips,
a cry of rage, fear, and despair, and I fled from the verandah and the
house.
I ran I knew not where, but it was towards the beach. As I went,
my head whirled; so strange, so sudden, were these events and insults.
Who was she? what, in Heaven’s name, the power she wielded over
my obedient negroes? Why had she addressed me as a slave? why
spoken of my father’s sale? To all these tumultuary questions
I could find no answer; and in the turmoil of my mind, nothing was plain
except the hateful leering image of the woman.
I was still running, mad with fear and anger, when I saw my father coming
to meet me from the landing-place; and with a cry that I thought would
have killed me, leaped into his arms and broke into a passion of sobs
and tears upon his bosom. He made me sit down below a tall palmetto
that grew not far off; comforted me, but with some abstraction in his
voice; and as soon as I regained the least command upon my feelings,
asked me, not without harshness, what this grief betokened. I
was surprised by his tone into a still greater measure of composure;
and in firm tones, though still interrupted by sobs, I told him there
was a stranger in the island, at which I thought he started and turned
pale; that the servants would not obey me; that the stranger’s
name was Madam Mendizabal, and, at that, he seemed to me both troubled
and relieved; that she had insulted me, treated me as a slave (and here
my father’s brow began to darken), threatened to buy me at a sale,
and questioned my own servants before my face; and that, at last, finding
myself quite helpless and exposed to these intolerable liberties, I
had fled from the house in terror, indignation, and amazement.
‘Teresa,’ said my father, with singular gravity of voice,
‘I must make to-day a call upon your courage; much must be told
you, there is much that you must do to help me; and my daughter must
prove herself a woman by her spirit. As for this Mendizabal, what
shall I say? or how am I to tell you what she is? Twenty years
ago, she was the loveliest of slaves; to-day she is what you see her
- prematurely old, disgraced by the practice of every vice and every
nefarious industry, but free, rich, married, they say, to some reputable
man, whom may Heaven assist! and exercising among her ancient mates,
the slaves of Cuba, an influence as unbounded as its reason is mysterious.
Horrible rites, it is supposed, cement her empire: the rites of Hoodoo.
Be that as it may, I would have you dismiss the thought of this incomparable
witch; it is not from her that danger threatens us; and into her hands,
I make bold to promise, you shall never fall.’
‘Father!’ I cried. ‘Fall? Was there any
truth, then, in her words? Am I - O father, tell me plain; I can
bear anything but this suspense.’
‘I will tell you,’ he replied, with merciful bluntness.
‘Your mother was a slave; it was my design, so soon as I had saved
a competence, to sail to the free land of Britain, where the law would
suffer me to marry her: a design too long procrastinated; for death,
at the last moment, intervened. You will now understand the heaviness
with which your mother’s memory hangs about my neck.’
I cried out aloud, in pity for my parents; and in seeking to console
the survivor, I forgot myself.
‘It matters not,’ resumed my father. ‘What I
have left undone can never be repaired, and I must bear the penalty
of my remorse. But, Teresa, with so cutting a reminder of the
evils of delay, I set myself at once to do what was still possible:
to liberate yourself.’
I began to break forth in thanks, but he checked me with a sombre roughness.
‘Your mother’s illness,’ he resumed, ‘had engaged
too great a portion of my time; my business in the city had lain too
long at the mercy of ignorant underlings; my head, my taste, my unequalled
knowledge of the more precious stones, that art by which I can distinguish,
even on the darkest night, a sapphire from a ruby, and tell at a glance
in what quarter of the earth a gem was disinterred - all these had been
too long absent from the conduct of affairs. Teresa, I was insolvent.’
‘What matters that?’ I cried. ‘What matters
poverty, if we be left together with our love and sacred memories?’
‘You do not comprehend,’ he said gloomily. ‘Slave,
as you are, young - alas! scarce more than child! - accomplished, beautiful
with the most touching beauty, innocent as an angel - all these qualities
that should disarm the very wolves and crocodiles, are, in the eyes
of those to whom I stand indebted, commodities to buy and sell.
You are a chattel; a marketable thing; and worth - heavens, that I should
say such words! - worth money. Do you begin to see? If I
were to give you freedom, I should defraud my creditors; the manumission
would be certainly annulled; you would be still a slave, and I a criminal.’
I caught his hand in mine, kissed it, and moaned in pity for myself,
in sympathy for my father.
‘How I have toiled,’ he continued, ‘how I have dared
and striven to repair my losses, Heaven has beheld and will remember.
Its blessing was denied to my endeavours, or, as I please myself by
thinking, but delayed to descend upon my daughter’s head.
At length, all hope was at an end; I was ruined beyond retrieve; a heavy
debt fell due upon the morrow, which I could not meet; I should be declared
a bankrupt, and my goods, my lands, my jewels that I so much loved,
my slaves whom I have spoiled and rendered happy, and oh! tenfold worse,
you, my beloved daughter, would be sold and pass into the hands of ignorant
and greedy traffickers. Too long, I saw, had I accepted and profited
by this great crime of slavery; but was my daughter, my innocent unsullied
daughter, was she to pay the price? I cried out - no! -
I took Heaven to witness my temptation; I caught up this bag and fled.
Close upon my track are the pursuers; perhaps to-night, perhaps to-morrow,
they will land upon this isle, sacred to the memory of the dear soul
that bore you, to consign your father to an ignominious prison, and
yourself to slavery and dishonour. We have not many hours before
us. Off the north coast of our isle, by strange good fortune,
an English yacht has for some days been hovering. It belongs to
Sir George Greville, whom I slightly know, to whom ere now I have rendered
unusual services, and who will not refuse to help in our escape.
Or if he did, if his gratitude were in default, I have the power to
force him. For what does it mean, my child - what means this Englishman,
who hangs for years upon the shores of Cuba, and returns from every
trip with new and valuable gems?’
‘He may have found a mine,’ I hazarded.
‘So he declares,’ returned my father; ‘but the strange
gift I have received from nature, easily transpierced the fable.
He brought me diamonds only, which I bought, at first, in innocence;
at a second glance, I started; for of these stones, my child, some had
first seen the day in Africa, some in Brazil; while others, from their
peculiar water and rude workmanship, I divined to be the spoil of ancient
temples. Thus put upon the scent, I made inquiries. Oh,
he is cunning, but I was cunninger than he. He visited, I found,
the shop of every jeweller in town; to one he came with rubies, to one
with emeralds, to one with precious beryl; to all, with this same story
of the mine. But in what mine, what rich epitome of the earth’s
surface, were there conjoined the rubies of Ispahan, the pearls of Coromandel,
and the diamonds of Golconda? No, child, that man, for all his
yacht and title, that man must fear and must obey me. To-night,
then, as soon as it is dark, we must take our way through the swamp
by the path which I shall presently show you; thence, across the highlands
of the isle, a track is blazed, which shall conduct us to the haven
on the north; and close by the yacht is riding. Should my pursuers
come before the hour at which I look to see them, they will still arrive
too late; a trusty man attends on the mainland; as soon as they appear,
we shall behold, if it be dark, the redness of a fire, if it be day,
a pillar of smoke, on the opposing headland; and thus warned, we shall
have time to put the swamp between ourselves and danger. Meantime,
I would conceal this bag; I would, before all things, be seen to arrive
at the house with empty hands; a blabbing slave might else undo us.
For see!’ he added; and holding up the bag, which he had already
shown me, he poured into my lap a shower of unmounted jewels, brighter
than flowers, of every size and colour, and catching, as they fell,
upon a million dainty facets, the ardour of the sun.
I could not restrain a cry of admiration.
‘Even in your ignorant eyes,’ pursued my father, ‘they
command respect. Yet what are they but pebbles, passive to the
tool, cold as death? Ingrate!’ he cried. ‘Each
one of these - miracles of nature’s patience, conceived out of
the dust in centuries of microscopical activity, each one is, for you
and me, a year of life, liberty, and mutual affection. How, then,
should I cherish them! and why do I delay to place them beyond reach!
Teresa, follow me.’
He rose to his feet, and led me to the borders of the great jungle,
where they overhung, in a wall of poisonous and dusky foliage, the declivity
of the hill on which my father’s house stood planted. For
some while he skirted, with attentive eyes, the margin of the thicket.
Then, seeming to recognise some mark, for his countenance became immediately
lightened of a load of thought, he paused and addressed me. ‘Here,’
said he, ‘is the entrance of the secret path that I have mentioned,
and here you shall await me. I but pass some hundreds of yards
into the swamp to bury my poor treasure; as soon as that is safe, I
will return.’ It was in vain that I sought to dissuade him,
urging the dangers of the place; in vain that I begged to be allowed
to follow, pleading the black blood that I now knew to circulate in
my veins: to all my appeals he turned a deaf ear, and, bending back
a portion of the screen of bushes, disappeared into the pestilential
silence of the swamp.
At the end of a full hour, the bushes were once more thrust aside; and
my father stepped from out the thicket, and paused and almost staggered
in the first shock of the blinding sunlight. His face was of a
singular dusky red; and yet for all the heat of the tropical noon, he
did not seem to sweat.
‘You are tired,’ I cried, springing to meet him. ‘You
are ill.’
‘I am tired,’ he replied; ‘the air in that jungle
stifles one; my eyes, besides, have grown accustomed to its gloom, and
the strong sunshine pierces them like knives. A moment, Teresa,
give me but a moment. All shall yet be well. I have buried
the hoard under a cypress, immediately beyond the bayou, on the left-hand
margin of the path; beautiful, bright things, they now lie whelmed in
slime; you shall find them there, if needful. But come, let us
to the house; it is time to eat against our journey of the night: to
eat and then to sleep, my poor Teresa: then to sleep.’ And
he looked upon me out of bloodshot eyes, shaking his head as if in pity.
We went hurriedly, for he kept murmuring that he had been gone too long,
and that the servants might suspect; passed through the airy stretch
of the verandah; and came at length into the grateful twilight of the
shuttered house. The meal was spread; the house servants, already
informed by the boatmen of the master’s return, were all back
at their posts, and terrified, as I could see, to face me. My
father still murmuring of haste with weary and feverish pertinacity,
I hurried at once to take my place at table; but I had no sooner left
his arm than he paused and thrust forth both his hands with a strange
gesture of groping. ‘How is this?’ he cried, in a
sharp, unhuman voice. ‘Am I blind?’ I ran to
him and tried to lead him to the table; but he resisted and stood stiffly
where he was, opening and shutting his jaws, as if in a painful effort
after breath. Then suddenly he raised both hands to his temples,
cried out, ‘My head, my head!’ and reeled and fell against
the wall.
I knew too well what it must be. I turned and begged the servants
to relieve him. But they, with one accord, denied the possibility
of hope; the master had gone into the swamp, they said, the master must
die; all help was idle. Why should I dwell upon his sufferings?
I had him carried to a bed, and watched beside him. He lay still,
and at times ground his teeth, and talked at times unintelligibly, only
that one word of hurry, hurry, coming distinctly to my ears, and telling
me that, even in the last struggle with the powers of death, his mind
was still tortured by his daughter’s peril. The sun had
gone down, the darkness had fallen, when I perceived that I was alone
on this unhappy earth. What thought had I of flight, of safety,
of the impending dangers of my situation? Beside the body of my
last friend, I had forgotten all except the natural pangs of my bereavement.
The sun was some four hours above the eastern line, when I was recalled
to a knowledge of the things of earth, by the entrance of the slave-girl
to whom I have already referred. The poor soul was indeed devotedly
attached to me; and it was with streaming tears that she broke to me
the import of her coming. With the first light of dawn a boat
had reached our landing-place, and set on shore upon our isle (till
now so fortunate) a party of officers bearing a warrant to arrest my
father’s person, and a man of a gross body and low manners, who
declared the island, the plantation, and all its human chattels, to
be now his own. ‘I think,’ said my slave-girl, ‘he
must be a politician or some very powerful sorcerer; for Madam Mendizabal
had no sooner seen them coming, than she took to the woods.’
‘Fool,’ said I, ‘it was the officers she feared; and
at any rate why does that beldam still dare to pollute the island with
her presence? And O Cora,’ I exclaimed, remembering my grief,
‘what matter all these troubles to an orphan?’
‘Mistress,’ said she, ‘I must remind you of two things.
Never speak as you do now of Madam Mendizabal; or never to a person
of colour; for she is the most powerful woman in this world, and her
real name even, if one durst pronounce it, were a spell to raise the
dead. And whatever you do, speak no more of her to your unhappy
Cora; for though it is possible she may be afraid of the police (and
indeed I think that I have heard she is in hiding), and though I know
that you will laugh and not believe, yet it is true, and proved, and
known that she hears every word that people utter in this whole vast
world; and your poor Cora is already deep enough in her black books.
She looks at me, mistress, till my blood turns ice. That is the
first I had to say; and now for the second: do, pray, for Heaven’s
sake, bear in mind that you are no longer the poor Señor’s
daughter. He is gone, dear gentleman; and now you are no more
than a common slave-girl like myself. The man to whom you belong
calls for you; oh, my dear mistress, go at once! With your youth
and beauty, you may still, if you are winning and obedient, secure yourself
an easy life.’
For a moment I looked on the creature with the indignation you may conceive;
the next, it was gone: she did but speak after her kind, as the bird
sings or cattle bellow. ‘Go,’ said I. ‘Go,
Cora. I thank you for your kind intentions. Leave me alone
one moment with my dead father; and tell this man that I will come at
once.’
She went: and I, turning to the bed of death, addressed to those deaf
ears the last appeal and defence of my beleaguered innocence.
‘Father,’ I said, ‘it was your last thought, even
in the pangs of dissolution, that your daughter should escape disgrace.
Here, at your side, I swear to you that purpose shall be carried out;
by what means, I know not; by crime, if need be; and Heaven forgive
both you and me and our oppressors, and Heaven help my helplessness!’
Thereupon I felt strengthened as by long repose; stepped to the mirror,
ay, even in that chamber of the dead; hastily arranged my hair, refreshed
my tear-worn eyes, breathed a dumb farewell to the originator of my
days and sorrows; and composing my features to a smile, went forth to
meet my master.
He was in a great, hot bustle, reviewing that house, once ours, to which
he had but now succeeded; a corpulent, sanguine man of middle age, sensual,
vulgar, humorous, and, if I judged rightly, not ill-disposed by nature.
But the sparkle that came into his eye as he observed me enter, warned
me to expect the worst.
‘Is this your late mistress?’ he inquired of the slaves;
and when he had learnt it was so, instantly dismissed them. ‘Now,
my dear,’ said he, ‘I am a plain man: none of your damned
Spaniards, but a true blue, hard-working, honest Englishman. My
name is Caulder.’
‘Thank you, sir,’ said I, and curtsied very smartly as I
had seen the servants.
‘Come,’ said he, ‘this is better than I had expected;
and if you choose to be dutiful in the station to which it has pleased
God to call you, you will find me a very kind old fellow. I like
your looks,’ he added, calling me by my name, which he scandalously
mispronounced. ‘Is your hair all your own?’ he then
inquired with a certain sharpness, and coming up to me, as though I
were a horse, he grossly satisfied his doubts. I was all one flame
from head to foot, but I contained my righteous anger and submitted.
‘That is very well,’ he continued, chucking me good humouredly
under the chin. ‘You will have no cause to regret coming
to old Caulder, eh? But that is by the way. What is more
to the point is this: your late master was a most dishonest rogue, and
levanted with some valuable property that belonged of rights to me.
Now, considering your relation to him, I regard you as the likeliest
person to know what has become of it; and I warn you, before you answer,
that my whole future kindness will depend upon your honesty. I
am an honest man myself, and expect the same in my servants.’
‘Do you mean the jewels?’ said I, sinking my voice into
a whisper.
‘That is just precisely what I do,’ said he, and chuckled.
‘Hush!’ said I.
‘Hush?’ he repeated. ‘And why hush? I
am on my own place, I would have you to know, and surrounded by my own
lawful servants.’
‘Are the officers gone?’ I asked; and oh! how my hopes hung
upon the answer!
‘They are,’ said he, looking somewhat disconcerted.
‘Why do you ask?’
‘I wish you had kept them,’ I answered, solemnly enough,
although my heart at that same moment leaped with exultation.
‘Master, I must not conceal from you the truth. The servants
on this estate are in a dangerous condition, and mutiny has long been
brewing.’
‘Why,’ he cried, ‘I never saw a milder-looking lot
of niggers in my life.’ But for all that he turned somewhat
pale.
‘Did they tell you,’ I continued, ‘that Madam Mendizabal
is on the island? that, since her coming, they obey none but her? that
if, this morning, they have received you with even decent civility,
it was only by her orders - issued with what after-thought I leave you
to consider?’
‘Madam Jezebel?’ said he. ‘Well, she is a dangerous
devil; the police are after her, besides, for a whole series of murders;
but after all, what then? To be sure, she has a great influence
with you coloured folk. But what in fortune’s name can be
her errand here?’
‘The jewels,’ I replied. ‘Ah, sir, had you seen
that treasure, sapphire and emerald and opal, and the golden topaz,
and rubies red as the sunset - of what incalculable worth, of what unequalled
beauty to the eye! - had you seen it, as I have, and alas! as she
has - you would understand and tremble at your danger.’
‘She has seen them!’ he cried, and I could see by his face,
that my audacity was justified by its success.
I caught his hand in mine. ‘My master,’ said I, ‘I
am now yours; it is my duty, it should be my pleasure, to defend your
interests and life. Hear my advice, then; and, I conjure you,
be guided by my prudence. Follow me privily; let none see where
we are going; I will lead you to the place where the treasure has been
buried; that once disinterred, let us make straight for the boat, escape
to the mainland, and not return to this dangerous isle without the countenance
of soldiers.’
What free man in a free land would have credited so sudden a devotion?
But this oppressor, through the very arts and sophistries he had abused,
to quiet the rebellion of his conscience and to convince himself that
slavery was natural, fell like a child into the trap I laid for him.
He praised and thanked me; told me I had all the qualities he valued
in a servant; and when he had questioned me further as to the nature
and value of the treasure, and I had once more artfully inflamed his
greed, bade me without delay proceed to carry out my plan of action.
From a shed in the garden, I took a pick and shovel; and thence, by
devious paths among the magnolias, led my master to the entrance of
the swamp. I walked first, carrying, as I was now in duty bound,
the tools, and glancing continually behind me, lest we should be spied
upon and followed. When we were come as far as the beginning of
the path, it flashed into my mind I had forgotten meat; and leaving
Mr. Caulder in the shadow of a tree, I returned alone to the house for
a basket of provisions. Were they for him? I asked myself.
And a voice within me answered, No. While we were face to face, while
I still saw before my eyes the man to whom I belonged as the hand belongs
to the body, my indignation held me bravely up. But now that I
was alone, I conceived a sickness at myself and my designs that I could
scarce endure; I longed to throw myself at his feet, avow my intended
treachery, and warn him from that pestilential swamp, to which I was
decoying him to die; but my vow to my dead father, my duty to my innocent
youth, prevailed upon these scruples; and though my face was pale and
must have reflected the horror that oppressed my spirits, it was with
a firm step that I returned to the borders of the swamp, and with smiling
lips that I bade him rise and follow me.
The path on which we now entered was cut, like a tunnel, through the
living jungle. On either hand and overhead, the mass of foliage
was continuously joined; the day sparingly filtered through the depth
of super-impending wood; and the air was hot like steam, and heady with
vegetable odours, and lay like a load upon the lungs and brain.
Underfoot, a great depth of mould received our silent footprints; on
each side, mimosas, as tall as a man, shrank from my passing skirts
with a continuous hissing rustle; and but for these sentient vegetables,
all in that den of pestilence was motionless and noiseless.
We had gone but a little way in, when Mr. Caulder was seized with sudden
nausea, and must sit down a moment on the path. My heart yearned,
as I beheld him; and I seriously begged the doomed mortal to return
upon his steps. What were a few jewels in the scales with life?
I asked. But no, he said; that witch Madam Jezebel would find
them out; he was an honest man, and would not stand to be defrauded,
and so forth, panting the while, like a sick dog. Presently he
got to his feet again, protesting he had conquered his uneasiness; but
as we again began to go forward, I saw in his changed countenance, the
first approaches of death.
‘Master,’ said I, ‘you look pale, deathly pale; your
pallor fills me with dread. Your eyes are bloodshot; they are
red like the rubies that we seek.’
‘Wench,’ he cried, ‘look before you; look at your
steps. I declare to Heaven, if you annoy me once again by looking
back, I shall remind you of the change in your position.’
A little after, I observed a worm upon the ground, and told, in a whisper,
that its touch was death. Presently a great green serpent, vivid
as the grass in spring, wound rapidly across the path; and once again
I paused and looked back at my companion, with a horror in my eyes.
‘The coffin snake,’ said I, ‘the snake that dogs its
victim like a hound.’
But he was not to be dissuaded. ‘I am an old traveller,’
said he. ‘This is a foul jungle indeed; but we shall soon
be at an end.’
‘Ay,’ said I, looking at him, with a strange smile, ‘what
end?’
Thereupon he laughed again and again, but not very heartily; and then,
perceiving that the path began to widen and grow higher, ‘There!’
said he. ‘What did I tell you? We are past the worst.’
Indeed, we had now come to the bayou, which was in that place very narrow
and bridged across by a fallen trunk; but on either hand we could see
it broaden out, under a cavern of great arms of trees and hanging creepers:
sluggish, putrid, of a horrible and sickly stench, floated on by the
flat heads of alligators, and its banks alive with scarlet crabs.
‘If we fall from that unsteady bridge,’ said I, ‘see,
where the caiman lies ready to devour us! If, by the least divergence
from the path, we should be snared in a morass, see, where those myriads
of scarlet vermin scour the border of the thicket! Once helpless,
how they would swarm together to the assault! What could man do
against a thousand of such mailed assailants? And what a death
were that, to perish alive under their claws.’
‘Are you mad, girl?’ he cried. ‘I bid you be
silent and lead on.’
Again I looked upon him, half relenting; and at that he raised the stick
that was in his hand and cruelly struck me on the face. ‘Lead
on!’ he cried again. ‘Must I be all day, catching
my death in this vile slough, and all for a prating slave-girl?’
I took the blow in silence, I took it smiling; but the blood welled
back upon my heart. Something, I know not what, fell at that moment
with a dull plunge in the waters of the lagoon, and I told myself it
was my pity that had fallen.
On the farther side, to which we now hastily scrambled, the wood was
not so dense, the web of creepers not so solidly convolved. It
was possible, here and there, to mark a patch of somewhat brighter daylight,
or to distinguish, through the lighter web of parasites, the proportions
of some soaring tree. The cypress on the left stood very visibly
forth, upon the edge of such a clearing; the path in that place widened
broadly; and there was a patch of open ground, beset with horrible ant-heaps,
thick with their artificers. I laid down the tools and basket
by the cypress root, where they were instantly blackened over with the
crawling ants; and looked once more in the face of my unconscious victim.
Mosquitoes and foul flies wove so close a veil between us that his features
were obscured; and the sound of their flight was like the turning of
a mighty wheel.
‘Here,’ I said, ‘is the spot. I cannot dig,
for I have not learned to use such instruments; but, for your own sake,
I beseech you to be swift in what you do.’
He had sunk once more upon the ground, panting like a fish; and I saw
rising in his face the same dusky flush that had mantled on my father’s.
‘I feel ill,’ he gasped, ‘horribly ill; the swamp
turns around me; the drone of these carrion flies confounds me.
Have you not wine?’
I gave him a glass, and he drank greedily. ‘It is for you
to think,’ said I, ‘if you should further persevere.
The swamp has an ill name.’ And at the word I ominously
nodded.
‘Give me the pick,’ said he. ‘Where are the
jewels buried?’
I told him vaguely; and in the sweltering heat and closeness, and dim
twilight of the jungle, he began to wield the pickaxe, swinging it overhead
with the vigour of a healthy man. At first, there broke forth
upon him a strong sweat, that made his face to shine, and in which the
greedy insects settled thickly.
‘To sweat in such a place,’ said I. ‘O master,
is this wise? Fever is drunk in through open pores.’
‘What do you mean?’ he screamed, pausing with the pick buried
in the soil. ‘Do you seek to drive me mad? Do you
think I do not understand the danger that I run?’
‘That is all I want,’ said I: ‘I only wish you to
be swift.’ And then, my mind flitting to my father’s
deathbed, I began to murmur, scarce above my breath, the same vain repetition
of words, ‘Hurry, hurry, hurry.’
Presently, to my surprise, the treasure-seeker took them up; and while
he still wielded the pick, but now with staggering and uncertain blows,
repeated to himself, as it were the burthen of a song, ‘Hurry,
hurry, hurry;’ and then again, ‘There is no time to lose;
the marsh has an ill name, ill name;’ and then back to ‘Hurry,
hurry, hurry,’ with a dreadful, mechanical, hurried, and yet wearied
utterance, as a sick man rolls upon his pillow. The sweat had
disappeared; he was now dry, but all that I could see of him, of the
same dull brick red. Presently his pick unearthed the bag of jewels;
but he did not observe it, and continued hewing at the soil.
‘Master,’ said I, ‘there is the treasure.’
He seemed to waken from a dream. ‘Where?’ he cried;
and then, seeing it before his eyes, ‘Can this be possible?’
he added. ‘I must be light-headed. Girl,’ he
cried suddenly, with the same screaming tone of voice that I had once
before observed, ‘what is wrong? is this swamp accursed?’
‘It is a grave,’ I answered. ‘You will not go
out alive; and as for me, my life is in God’s hands.’
He fell upon the ground like a man struck by a blow, but whether from
the effect of my words, or from sudden seizure of the malady, I cannot
tell. Pretty soon, he raised his head. ‘You have brought
me here to die,’ he said; ‘at the risk of your own days,
you have condemned me. Why?’
‘To save my honour,’ I replied. ‘Bear me out
that I have warned you. Greed of these pebbles, and not I, has
been your undoer.’
He took out his revolver and handed it to me. ‘You see,’
he said, ‘I could have killed you even yet. But I am dying,
as you say; nothing could save me; and my bill is long enough already.
Dear me, dear me,’ he said, looking in my face with a curious,
puzzled, and pathetic look, like a dull child at school, ‘if there
be a judgment afterwards, my bill is long enough.’
At that, I broke into a passion of weeping, crawled at his feet, kissed
his hands, begged his forgiveness, put the pistol back into his grasp
and besought him to avenge his death; for indeed, if with my life I
could have bought back his, I had not balanced at the cost. But
he was determined, the poor soul, that I should yet more bitterly regret
my act.
‘I have nothing to forgive,’ said he. ‘Dear
heaven, what a thing is an old fool! I thought, upon my word,
you had taken quite a fancy to me.’
He was seized, at the same time, with a dreadful, swimming dizziness,
clung to me like a child, and called upon the name of some woman.
Presently this spasm, which I watched with choking tears, lessened and
died away; and he came again to the full possession of his mind.
‘I must write my will,’ he said. ‘Get out my
pocket-book.’ I did so, and he wrote hurriedly on one page
with a pencil. ‘Do not let my son know,’ he said;
‘he is a cruel dog, is my son Philip; do not let him know how
you have paid me out;’ and then all of a sudden, ‘God,’
he cried, ‘I am blind,’ and clapped both hands before his
eyes; and then again, and in a groaning whisper, ‘Don’t
leave me to the crabs!’ I swore I would be true to him so
long as a pulse stirred; and I redeemed my promise. I sat there
and watched him, as I had watched my father, but with what different,
with what appalling thoughts! Through the long afternoon, he gradually
sank. All that while, I fought an uphill battle to shield him
from the swarms of ants and the clouds of mosquitoes: the prisoner of
my crime. The night fell, the roar of insects instantly redoubled
in the dark arcades of the swamp; and still I was not sure that he had
breathed his last. At length, the flesh of his hand, which I yet
held in mine, grew chill between my fingers, and I knew that I was free.
I took his pocket-book and the revolver, being resolved rather to die
than to be captured, and laden besides with the basket and the bag of
gems, set forward towards the north. The swamp, at that hour of
the night, was filled with a continuous din: animals and insects of
all kinds, and all inimical to life, contributing their parts.
Yet in the midst of this turmoil of sound, I walked as though my eyes
were bandaged, beholding nothing. The soil sank under my foot,
with a horrid, slippery consistence, as though I were walking among
toads; the touch of the thick wall of foliage, by which alone I guided
myself, affrighted me like the touch of serpents; the darkness checked
my breathing like a gag; indeed, I have never suffered such extremes
of fear as during that nocturnal walk, nor have I ever known a more
sensible relief than when I found the path beginning to mount and to
grow firmer under foot, and saw, although still some way in front of
me, the silver brightness of the moon.
Presently, I had crossed the last of the jungle, and come forth amongst
noble and lofty woods, clean rock, the clean, dry dust, the aromatic
smell of mountain plants that had been baked all day in sunlight, and
the expressive silence of the night. My negro blood had carried
me unhurt across that reeking and pestiferous morass; by mere good fortune,
I had escaped the crawling and stinging vermin with which it was alive;
and I had now before me the easier portion of my enterprise, to cross
the isle and to make good my arrival at the haven and my acceptance
on the English yacht. It was impossible by night to follow such
a track as my father had described; and I was casting about for any
landmark, and, in my ignorance, vainly consulting the disposition of
the stars, when there fell upon my ear, from somewhere far in front,
the sound of many voices hurriedly singing.
I scarce knew upon what grounds I acted; but I shaped my steps in the
direction of that sound; and in a quarter of an hour’s walking,
came unperceived to the margin of an open glade. It was lighted
by the strong moon and by the flames of a fire. In the midst,
there stood a little low and rude building, surmounted by a cross: a
chapel, as I then remembered to have heard, long since desecrated and
given over to the rites of Hoodoo. Hard by the steps of entrance
was a black mass, continually agitated and stirring to and fro as if
with inarticulate life; and this I presently perceived to be a heap
of cocks, hares, dogs, and other birds and animals, still struggling,
but helplessly tethered and cruelly tossed one upon another. Both
the fire and the chapel were surrounded by a ring of kneeling Africans,
both men and women. Now they would raise their palms half-closed
to heaven, with a peculiar, passionate gesture of supplication; now
they would bow their heads and spread their hands before them on the
ground. As the double movement passed and repassed along the line,
the heads kept rising and falling, like waves upon the sea; and still,
as if in time to these gesticulations, the hurried chant continued.
I stood spellbound, knowing that my life depended by a hair, knowing
that I had stumbled on a celebration of the rites of Hoodoo.
Presently, the door of the chapel opened, and there came forth a tall
negro, entirely nude, and bearing in his hand the sacrificial knife.
He was followed by an apparition still more strange and shocking: Madam
Mendizabal, naked also, and carrying in both hands and raised to the
level of her face, an open basket of wicker. It was filled with
coiling snakes; and these, as she stood there with the uplifted basket,
shot through the osier grating and curled about her arms. At the
sight of this, the fervour of the crowd seemed to swell suddenly higher;
and the chant rose in pitch and grew more irregular in time and accent.
Then, at a sign from the tall negro, where he stood, motionless and
smiling, in the moon and firelight, the singing died away, and there
began the second stage of this barbarous and bloody celebration.
From different parts of the ring, one after another, man or woman, ran
forth into the midst; ducked, with that same gesture of the thrown-up
hand, before the priestess and her snakes; and with various adjurations,
uttered aloud the blackest wishes of the heart. Death and disease
were the favours usually invoked: the death or the disease of enemies
or rivals; some calling down these plagues upon the nearest of their
own blood, and one, to whom I swear I had been never less than kind,
invoking them upon myself. At each petition, the tall negro, still
smiling, picked up some bird or animal from the heaving mass upon his
left, slew it with the knife, and tossed its body on the ground.
At length, it seemed, it reached the turn of the high-priestess.
She set down the basket on the steps, moved into the centre of the ring,
grovelled in the dust before the reptiles, and still grovelling lifted
up her voice, between speech and singing, and with so great, with so
insane a fervour of excitement, as struck a sort of horror through my
blood.
‘Power,’ she began, ‘whose name we do not utter; power
that is neither good nor evil, but below them both; stronger than good,
greater than evil - all my life long I have adored and served thee.
Who has shed blood upon thine altars? whose voice is broken with the
singing of thy praises? whose limbs are faint before their age with
leaping in thy revels? Who has slain the child of her body?
I,’ she cried, ‘I, Metamnbogu! By my own name, I name
myself. I tear away the veil. I would be served or perish.
Hear me, slime of the fat swamp, blackness of the thunder, venom of
the serpent’s udder - hear or slay me! I would have two
things, O shapeless one, O horror of emptiness - two things, or die!
The blood of my white-faced husband; oh! give me that; he is the enemy
of Hoodoo; give me his blood! And yet another, O racer of the
blind winds, O germinator in the ruins of the dead, O root of life,
root of corruption! I grow old, I grow hideous; I am known, I
am hunted for my life: let thy servant then lay by this outworn body;
let thy chief priestess turn again to the blossom of her days, and be
a girl once more, and the desired of all men, even as in the past!
And, O lord and master, as I here ask a marvel not yet wrought since
we were torn from the old land, have I not prepared the sacrifice in
which thy soul delighteth - the kid without the horns?’
Even as she uttered the words, there was a great rumour of joy through
all the circle of worshippers; it rose, and fell, and rose again; and
swelled at last into rapture, when the tall negro, who had stepped an
instant into the chapel, reappeared before the door, carrying in his
arms the body of the slave-girl, Cora. I know not if I saw what
followed. When next my mind awoke to a clear knowledge, Cora was
laid upon the steps before the serpents; the negro with the knife stood
over her; the knife rose; and at this I screamed out in my great horror,
bidding them, in God’s name, to pause.
A stillness fell upon the mob of cannibals. A moment more, and
they must have thrown off this stupor, and I infallibly have perished.
But Heaven had designed to save me. The silence of these wretched
men was not yet broken, when there arose, in the empty night, a sound
louder than the roar of any European tempest, swifter to travel than
the wings of any Eastern wind. Blackness engulfed the world; blackness,
stabbed across from every side by intricate and blinding lightning.
Almost in the same second, at one world-swallowing stride, the heart
of the tornado reached the clearing. I heard an agonising crash,
and the light of my reason was overwhelmed.
When I recovered consciousness, the day was come. I was unhurt;
the trees close about me had not lost a bough; and I might have thought
at first that the tornado was a feature in a dream. It was otherwise
indeed; for when I looked abroad, I perceived I had escaped destruction
by a hand’s-breadth. Right through the forest, which here
covered hill and dale, the storm had ploughed a lane of ruin.
On either hand, the trees waved uninjured in the air of the morning;
but in the forthright course of its advance, the hurricane had left
no trophy standing. Everything, in that line, tree, man, or animal,
the desecrated chapel and the votaries of Hoodoo, had been subverted
and destroyed in that brief spasm of anger of the powers of air.
Everything, but a yard or two beyond the line of its passage, humble
flower, lofty tree, and the poor vulnerable maid who now knelt to pay
her gratitude to heaven, awoke unharmed in the crystal purity and peace
of the new day.
To move by the path of the tornado was a thing impossible to man, so
wildly were the wrecks of the tall forest piled together by that fugitive
convulsion. I crossed it indeed; with such labour and patience,
with so many dangerous slips and falls, as left me, at the further side,
bankrupt alike of strength and courage. There I sat down awhile
to recruit my forces; and as I ate (how should I bless the kindliness
of Heaven!) my eye, flitting to and fro in the colonnade of the great
trees, alighted on a trunk that had been blazed. Yes, by the directing
hand of Providence, I had been conducted to the very track I was to
follow. With what a light heart I now set forth, and walking with
how glad a step, traversed the uplands of the isle!
It was hard upon the hour of noon, when I came, all tattered and wayworn,
to the summit of a steep descent, and looked below me on the sea.
About all the coast, the surf, roused by the tornado of the night, beat
with a particular fury and made a fringe of snow. Close at my
feet, I saw a haven, set in precipitous and palm-crowned bluffs of rock.
Just outside, a ship was heaving on the surge, so trimly sparred, so
glossily painted, so elegant and point-device in every feature, that
my heart was seized with admiration. The English colours blew
from her masthead; and from my high station, I caught glimpses of her
snowy planking, as she rolled on the uneven deep, and saw the sun glitter
on the brass of her deck furniture. There, then, was my ship of
refuge; and of all my difficulties only one remained: to get on board
of her.
Half an hour later, I issued at last out of the woods on the margin
of a cove, into whose jaws the tossing and blue billows entered, and
along whose shores they broke with a surprising loudness. A wooded
promontory hid the yacht; and I had walked some distance round the beach,
in what appeared to be a virgin solitude, when my eye fell on a boat,
drawn into a natural harbour, where it rocked in safety, but deserted.
I looked about for those who should have manned her; and presently,
in the immediate entrance of the wood, spied the red embers of a fire,
and, stretched around in various attitudes, a party of slumbering mariners.
To these I drew near: most were black, a few white; but all were dressed
with the conspicuous decency of yachtsmen; and one, from his peaked
cap and glittering buttons, I rightly divined to be an officer.
Him, then, I touched upon the shoulder. He started up; the sharpness
of his movement woke the rest; and they all stared upon me in surprise.
‘What do you want?’ inquired the officer.
‘To go on board the yacht,’ I answered.
I thought they all seemed disconcerted at this; and the officer, with
something of sharpness, asked me who I was. Now I had determined
to conceal my name until I met Sir George; and the first name that rose
to my lips was that of the Señora Mendizabal. At the word,
there went a shock about the little party of seamen; the negroes stared
at me with indescribable eagerness, the whites themselves with something
of a scared surprise; and instantly the spirit of mischief prompted
me to add, ‘And if the name is new to your ears, call me Metamnbogu.’
I had never seen an effect so wonderful. The negroes threw their
hands into the air, with the same gesture I remarked the night before
about the Hoodoo camp-fire; first one, and then another, ran forward
and kneeled down and kissed the skirts of my torn dress; and when the
white officer broke out swearing and calling to know if they were mad,
the coloured seamen took him by the shoulders, dragged him on one side
till they were out of hearing, and surrounded him with open mouths and
extravagant pantomime. The officer seemed to struggle hard; he
laughed aloud, and I saw him make gestures of dissent and protest; but
in the end, whether overcome by reason or simply weary of resistance,
he gave in - approached me civilly enough, but with something of a sneering
manner underneath - and touching his cap, ‘My lady,’ said
he, ‘if that is what you are, the boat is ready.’
My reception on board the Nemorosa (for so the yacht was named)
partook of the same mingled nature. We were scarcely within hail
of that great and elegant fabric, where she lay rolling gunwale under
and churning the blue sea to snow, before the bulwarks were lined with
the heads of a great crowd of seamen, black, white, and yellow; and
these and the few who manned the boat began exchanging shouts in some
lingua franca incomprehensible to me. All eyes were directed
on the passenger; and once more I saw the negroes toss up their hands
to heaven, but now as if with passionate wonder and delight.
At the head of the gangway, I was received by another officer, a gentlemanly
man with blond and bushy whiskers; and to him I addressed my demand
to see Sir George.
‘But this is not - ’ he cried, and paused.
‘I know it,’ returned the other officer, who had brought
me from the shore. ‘But what the devil can we do?
Look at all the niggers!’
I followed his direction; and as my eye lighted upon each, the poor
ignorant Africans ducked, and bowed, and threw their hands into the
air, as though in the presence of a creature half divine. Apparently
the officer with the whiskers had instantly come round to the opinion
of his subaltern; for he now addressed me with every signal of respect.
‘Sir George is at the island, my lady,’ said he: ‘for
which, with your ladyship’s permission, I shall immediately make
all sail. The cabins are prepared. Steward, take Lady Greville
below.’
Under this new name, then, and so captivated by surprise that I could
neither think nor speak, I was ushered into a spacious and airy cabin,
hung about with weapons and surrounded by divans. The steward
asked for my commands; but I was by this time so wearied, bewildered,
and disturbed, that I could only wave him to leave me to myself, and
sink upon a pile of cushions. Presently, by the changed motion
of the ship, I knew her to be under way; my thoughts, so far from clarifying,
grew the more distracted and confused; dreams began to mingle and confound
them; and at length, by insensible transition, I sank into a dreamless
slumber.
When I awoke, the day and night had passed, and it was once more morning.
The world on which I reopened my eyes swam strangely up and down; the
jewels in the bag that lay beside me chinked together ceaselessly; the
clock and the barometer wagged to and fro like pendulums; and overhead,
seamen were singing out at their work, and coils of rope clattering
and thumping on the deck. Yet it was long before I had divined
that I was at sea; long before I had recalled, one after another, the
tragical, mysterious, and inexplicable events that had brought me where
was.
When I had done so, I thrust the jewels, which I was surprised to find
had been respected, into the bosom of my dress; and seeing a silver
bell hard by upon a table, rang it loudly. The steward instantly
appeared; I asked for food; and he proceeded to lay the table, regarding
me the while with a disquieting and pertinacious scrutiny. To
relieve myself of my embarrassment, I asked him, with as fair a show
of ease as I could muster, if it were usual for yachts to carry so numerous
a crew?
‘Madam,’ said he, ‘I know not who you are, nor what
mad fancy has induced you to usurp a name and an appalling destiny that
are not yours. I warn you from the soul. No sooner arrived
at the island - ’
At this moment he was interrupted by the whiskered officer, who had
entered unperceived behind him, and now laid a hand upon his shoulder.
The sudden pallor, the deadly and sick fear, that was imprinted on the
steward’s face, formed a startling addition to his words.
‘Parker!’ said the officer, and pointed towards the door.
‘Yes, Mr. Kentish,’ said the steward. ‘For God’s
sake, Mr. Kentish!’ And vanished, with a white face, from
the cabin.
Thereupon the officer bade me sit down, and began to help me, and join
in the meal. ‘I fill your ladyship’s glass,’
said he, and handed me a tumbler of neat rum.
‘Sir,’ cried I, ‘do you expect me to drink this?’
He laughed heartily. ‘Your ladyship is so much changed,’
said he, ‘that I no longer expect any one thing more than any
other.’
Immediately after, a white seaman entered the cabin, saluted both Mr.
Kentish and myself, and informed the officer there was a sail in sight,
which was bound to pass us very close, and that Mr. Harland was in doubt
about the colours.
‘Being so near the island?’ asked Mr. Kentish.
‘That was what Mr. Harland said, sir,’ returned the sailor,
with a scrape.
‘Better not, I think,’ said Mr. Kentish. ‘My
compliments to Mr. Harland; and if she seem a lively boat, give her
the stars and stripes; but if she be dull, and we can easily outsail
her, show John Dutchman. That is always another word for incivility
at sea; so we can disregard a hail or a flag of distress, without attracting
notice.’
As soon as the sailor had gone on deck, I turned to the officer in wonder.
‘Mr. Kentish, if that be your name,’ said I, ‘are
you ashamed of your own colours?’
‘Your ladyship refers to the Jolly Roger?’ he inquired,
with perfect gravity; and immediately after, went into peals of laughter.
‘Pardon me,’ said he; ‘but here for the first time
I recognise your ladyship’s impetuosity.’ Nor, try
as I pleased, could I extract from him any explanation of this mystery,
but only oily and commonplace evasion.
While we were thus occupied, the movement of the Nemorosa gradually
became less violent; its speed at the same time diminished; and presently
after, with a sullen plunge, the anchor was discharged into the sea.
Kentish immediately rose, offered his arm, and conducted me on deck;
where I found we were lying in a roadstead among many low and rocky
islets, hovered about by an innumerable cloud of sea-fowl. Immediately
under our board, a somewhat larger isle was green with trees, set with
a few low buildings and approached by a pier of very crazy workmanship;
and a little inshore of us, a smaller vessel lay at anchor.
I had scarce time to glance to the four quarters, ere a boat was lowered.
I was handed in, Kentish took place beside me, and we pulled briskly
to the pier. A crowd of villainous, armed loiterers, both black
and white, looked on upon our landing; and again the word passed about
among the negroes, and again I was received with prostrations and the
same gesture of the flung-up hand. By this, what with the appearance
of these men, and the lawless, sea-girt spot in which I found myself,
my courage began a little to decline, and clinging to the arm of Mr.
Kentish, I begged him to tell me what it meant?
‘Nay, madam,’ he returned, ‘you know.’
And leading me smartly through the crowd, which continued to follow
at a considerable distance, and at which he still kept looking back,
I thought, with apprehension, he brought me to a low house that stood
alone in an encumbered yard, opened the door, and begged me to enter.
‘But why?’ said I. ‘I demand to see Sir George.’
‘Madam,’ returned Mr. Kentish, looking suddenly as black
as thunder, ‘to drop all fence, I know neither who nor what you
are; beyond the fact that you are not the person whose name you have
assumed. But be what you please, spy, ghost, devil, or most ill-judging
jester, if you do not immediately enter that house, I will cut you to
the earth.’ And even as he spoke, he threw an uneasy glance
behind him at the following crowd of blacks.
I did not wait to be twice threatened; I obeyed at once, and with a
palpitating heart; and the next moment, the door was locked from the
outside and the key withdrawn. The interior was long, low, and
quite unfurnished, but filled, almost from end to end, with sugar-cane,
tar-barrels, old tarry rope, and other incongruous and highly inflammable
material; and not only was the door locked, but the solitary window
barred with iron.
I was by this time so exceedingly bewildered and afraid, that I would
have given years of my life to be once more the slave of Mr. Caulder.
I still stood, with my hands clasped, the image of despair, looking
about me on the lumber of the room or raising my eyes to heaven; when
there appeared outside the window bars, the face of a very black negro,
who signed to me imperiously to draw near. I did so, and he instantly,
and with every mark of fervour, addressed me a long speech in some unknown
and barbarous tongue.
‘I declare,’ I cried, clasping my brow, ‘I do not
understand one syllable.’
‘Not?’ he said in Spanish. ‘Great, great, are
the powers of Hoodoo! Her very mind is changed! But, O chief
priestess, why have you suffered yourself to be shut into this cage?
why did you not call your slaves at once to your defence? Do you
not see that all has been prepared to murder you? at a spark, this flimsy
house will go in flames; and alas! who shall then be the chief priestess?
and what shall be the profit of the miracle?’
‘Heavens!’ cried I, ‘can I not see Sir George?
I must, I must, come by speech of him. Oh, bring me to Sir George!’
And, my terror fairly mastering my courage, I fell upon my knees and
began to pray to all the saints.
‘Lordy!’ cried the negro, ‘here they come!’
And his black head was instantly withdrawn from the window.
‘I never heard such nonsense in my life,’ exclaimed a voice.
‘Why, so we all say, Sir George,’ replied the voice of Mr.
Kentish. ‘But put yourself in our place. The niggers
were near two to one. And upon my word, if you’ll excuse
me, sir, considering the notion they have taken in their heads, I regard
it as precious fortunate for all of us that the mistake occurred.’
‘This is no question of fortune, sir,’ returned Sir George.
‘It is a question of my orders, and you may take my word for it,
Kentish, either Harland, or yourself, or Parker - or, by George, all
three of you! - shall swing for this affair. These are my sentiments.
Give me the key and be off.’
Immediately after, the key turned in the lock; and there appeared upon
the threshold a gentleman, between forty and fifty, with a very open
countenance, and of a stout and personable figure.
‘My dear young lady,’ said he, ‘who the devil may
you be?’
I told him all my story in one rush of words. He heard me, from
the first, with an amazement you can scarcely picture, but when I came
to the death of the Señora Mendizabal in the tornado, he fairly
leaped into the air.
‘My dear child,’ he cried, clasping me in his arms, ‘excuse
a man who might be your father! This is the best news I ever had
since I was born; for that hag of a mulatto was no less a person than
my wife.’ He sat down upon a tar-barrel, as if unmanned
by joy. ‘Dear me,’ said he, ‘I declare this
tempts me to believe in Providence. And what,’ he added,
‘can I do for you?’
‘Sir George,’ said I, ‘I am already rich: all that
I ask is your protection.’
‘Understand one thing,’ he said, with great energy.
‘I will never marry.’
‘I had not ventured to propose it,’ I exclaimed, unable
to restrain my mirth; ‘I only seek to be conveyed to England,
the natural home of the escaped slave.’
‘Well,’ returned Sir George, ‘frankly I owe you something
for this exhilarating news; besides, your father was of use to me.
Now, I have made a small competence in business - a jewel mine, a sort
of naval agency, et caetera, and I am on the point of breaking up my
company, and retiring to my place in Devonshire to pass a plain old
age, unmarried. One good turn deserves another: if you swear to
hold your tongue about this island, these little bonfire arrangements,
and the whole episode of my unfortunate marriage, why, I’ll carry
you home aboard the Nemorosa.’ I eagerly accepted
his conditions.
‘One thing more,’ said he. ‘My late wife was
some sort of a sorceress among the blacks; and they are all persuaded
she has come alive again in your agreeable person. Now, you will
have the goodness to keep up that fancy, if you please; and to swear
to them, on the authority of Hoodoo or whatever his name may be, that
I am from this moment quite a sacred character.’
‘I swear it,’ said I, ‘by my father’s memory;
and that is a vow that I will never break.’
‘I have considerably better hold on you than any oath,’
returned Sir George, with a chuckle; ‘for you are not only an
escaped slave, but have, by your own account, a considerable amount
of stolen property.’
I was struck dumb; I saw it was too true; in a glance, I recognised
that these jewels were no longer mine; with similar quickness, I decided
they should be restored, ay, if it cost me the liberty that I had just
regained. Forgetful of all else, forgetful of Sir George, who
sat and watched me with a smile, I drew out Mr. Caulder’s pocket-book
and turned to the page on which the dying man had scrawled his testament.
How shall I describe the agony of happiness and remorse with which I
read it! for my victim had not only set me free, but bequeathed to me
the bag of jewels.
My plain tale draws towards a close. Sir George and I, in my character
of his rejuvenated wife, displayed ourselves arm-in-arm among the negroes,
and were cheered and followed to the place of embarkation. There,
Sir George, turning about, made a speech to his old companions, in which
he thanked and bade them farewell with a very manly spirit; and towards
the end of which he fell on some expressions which I still remember.
‘If any of you gentry lose your money,’ he said, ‘take
care you do not come to me; for in the first place, I shall do my best
to have you murdered; and if that fails, I hand you over to the law.
Blackmail won’t do for me. I’ll rather risk all upon
a cast, than be pulled to pieces by degrees. I’ll rather
be found out and hang, than give a doit to one man-jack of you.’
That same night we got under way and crossed to the port of New Orleans,
whence, as a sacred trust, I sent the pocket-book to Mr. Caulder’s
son. In a week’s time, the men were all paid off; new hands
were shipped; and the Nemorosa weighed her anchor for Old England.
A more delightful voyage it were hard to fancy. Sir George, of
course, was not a conscientious man; but he had an unaffected gaiety
of character that naturally endeared him to the young; and it was interesting
to hear him lay out his projects for the future, when he should be returned
to Parliament, and place at the service of the nation his experience
of marine affairs. I asked him, if his notion of piracy upon a
private yacht were not original. But he told me, no. ‘A
yacht, Miss Valdevia,’ he observed, ‘is a chartered nuisance.
Who smuggles? Who robs the salmon rivers of the West of Scotland?
Who cruelly beats the keepers if they dare to intervene? The crews
and the proprietors of yachts. All I have done is to extend the
line a trifle, and if you ask me for my unbiassed opinion, I do not
suppose that I am in the least alone.’
In short, we were the best of friends, and lived like father and daughter;
though I still withheld from him, of course, that respect which is only
due to moral excellence.
We were still some days’ sail from England, when Sir George obtained,
from an outward-bound ship, a packet of newspapers; and from that fatal
hour my misfortunes recommenced. He sat, the same evening, in
the cabin, reading the news, and making savoury comments on the decline
of England and the poor condition of the navy, when I suddenly observed
him to change countenance.
‘Hullo!’ said he, ‘this is bad; this is deuced bad,
Miss Valdevia. You would not listen to sound sense, you would
send that pocket-book to that man Caulder’s son.’
‘Sir George,’ said I, ‘it was my duty.’
‘You are prettily paid for it, at least,’ says he; ‘and
much as I regret it, I, for one, am done with you. This fellow
Caulder demands your extradition.’
‘But a slave,’ I returned, ‘is safe in England.’
‘Yes, by George!’ replied the baronet; ‘but it’s
not a slave, Miss Valdevia, it’s a thief that he demands.
He has quietly destroyed the will; and now accuses you of robbing your
father’s bankrupt estate of jewels to the value of a hundred thousand
pounds.’
I was so much overcome by indignation at this hateful charge and concern
for my unhappy fate that the genial baronet made haste to put me more
at ease.
‘Do not be cast down,’ said he. ‘Of course,
I wash my hands of you myself. A man in my position - baronet,
old family, and all that - cannot possibly be too particular about the
company he keeps. But I am a deuced good-humoured old boy, let
me tell you, when not ruffled; and I will do the best I can to put you
right. I will lend you a trifle of ready money, give you the address
of an excellent lawyer in London, and find a way to set you on shore
unsuspected.’
He was in every particular as good as his word. Four days later,
the Nemorosa sounded her way, under the cloak of a dark night,
into a certain haven of the coast of England; and a boat, rowing with
muffled oars, set me ashore upon the beach within a stone’s throw
of a railway station. Thither, guided by Sir George’s directions,
I groped a devious way; and finding a bench upon the platform, sat me
down, wrapped in a man’s fur great-coat, to await the coming of
the day. It was still dark when a light was struck behind one
of the windows of the building; nor had the east begun to kindle to
the warmer colours of the dawn, before a porter carrying a lantern,
issued from the door and found himself face to face with the unfortunate
Teresa. He looked all about him; in the grey twilight of the dawn,
the haven was seen to lie deserted, and the yacht had long since disappeared.
‘Who are you?’ he cried.
‘I am a traveller,’ said I.
‘And where do you come from?’ he asked.
‘I am going by the first train to London,’ I replied.
In such manner, like a ghost or a new creation, was Teresa with her
bag of jewels landed on the shores of England; in this silent fashion,
without history or name, she took her place among the millions of a
new country.
Since then, I have lived by the expedients of my lawyer, lying concealed
in quiet lodgings, dogged by the spies of Cuba, and not knowing at what
hour my liberty and honour may be lost.
THE BROWN BOX (Concluded)
The effect of this tale on the mind of Harry Desborough was instant
and convincing. The Fair Cuban had been already the loveliest,
she now became, in his eyes, the most romantic, the most innocent, and
the most unhappy of her sex. He was bereft of words to utter what
he felt: what pity, what admiration, what youthful envy of a career
so vivid and adventurous. ‘O madam!’ he began; and
finding no language adequate to that apostrophe, caught up her hand
and wrung it in his own. ‘Count upon me,’ he added,
with bewildered fervour; and getting somehow or other out of the apartment
and from the circle of that radiant sorceress, he found himself in the
strange out-of-doors, beholding dull houses, wondering at dull passers-by,
a fallen angel. She had smiled upon him as he left, and with how
significant, how beautiful a smile! The memory lingered in his
heart; and when he found his way to a certain restaurant where music
was performed, flutes (as it were of Paradise) accompanied his meal.
The strings went to the melody of that parting smile; they paraphrased
and glossed it in the sense that he desired; and for the first time
in his plain and somewhat dreary life, he perceived himself to have
a taste for music.
The next day, and the next, his meditations moved to that delectable
air. Now he saw her, and was favoured; now saw her not at all;
now saw her and was put by. The fall of her foot upon the stair
entranced him; the books that he sought out and read were books on Cuba,
and spoke of her indirectly; nay, and in the very landlady’s parlour,
he found one that told of precisely such a hurricane, and, down to the
smallest detail, confirmed (had confirmation been required) the truth
of her recital. Presently he began to fall into that prettiest
mood of a young love, in which the lover scorns himself for his presumption.
Who was he, the dull one, the commonplace unemployed, the man without
adventure, the impure, the untruthful, to aspire to such a creature
made of fire and air, and hallowed and adorned by such incomparable
passages of life? What should he do, to be more worthy? by what
devotion, call down the notice of these eyes to so terrene a being as
himself?
He betook himself, thereupon, to the rural privacy of the square, where,
being a lad of a kind heart, he had made himself a circle of acquaintances
among its shy frequenters, the half-domestic cats and the visitors that
hung before the windows of the Children’s Hospital. There
he walked, considering the depth of his demerit and the height of the
adored one’s super-excellence; now lighting upon earth to say
a pleasant word to the brother of some infant invalid; now, with a great
heave of breath, remembering the queen of women, and the sunshine of
his life.
What was he to do? Teresa, he had observed, was in the habit of
leaving the house towards afternoon: she might, perchance, run danger
from some Cuban emissary, when the presence of a friend might turn the
balance in her favour: how, then, if he should follow her? To
offer his company would seem like an intrusion; to dog her openly were
a manifest impertinence; he saw himself reduced to a more stealthy part,
which, though in some ways distasteful to his mind, he did not doubt
that he could practise with the skill of a detective.
The next day he proceeded to put his plan in action. At the corner
of Tottenham Court Road, however, the Señorita suddenly turned
back, and met him face to face, with every mark of pleasure and surprise.
‘Ah, Señor, I am sometimes fortunate!’ she cried.
‘I was looking for a messenger;’ and with the sweetest of
smiles, she despatched him to the East End of London, to an address
which he was unable to find. This was a bitter pill to the knight-errant;
but when he returned at night, worn out with fruitless wandering and
dismayed by his fiasco, the lady received him with a friendly
gaiety, protesting that all was for the best, since she had changed
her mind and long since repented of her message.
Next day he resumed his labours, glowing with pity and courage, and
determined to protect Teresa with his life. But a painful shock
awaited him. In the narrow and silent Hanway Street, she turned
suddenly about and addressed him with a manner and a light in her eyes
that were new to the young man’s experience.
‘Do I understand that you follow me, Señor?’ she
cried. ‘Are these the manners of the English gentleman?’
Harry confounded himself in the most abject apologies and prayers to
be forgiven, vowed to offend no more, and was at length dismissed, crestfallen
and heavy of heart. The check was final; he gave up that road
to service; and began once more to hang about the square or on the terrace,
filled with remorse and love, admirable and idiotic, a fit object for
the scorn and envy of older men. In these idle hours, while he
was courting fortune for a sight of the beloved, it fell out naturally
that he should observe the manners and appearance of such as came about
the house. One person alone was the occasional visitor of the
young lady: a man of considerable stature, and distinguished only by
the doubtful ornament of a chin-beard in the style of an American deacon.
Something in his appearance grated upon Harry; this distaste grew upon
him in the course of days; and when at length he mustered courage to
inquire of the Fair Cuban who this was, he was yet more dismayed by
her reply.
‘That gentleman,’ said she, a smile struggling to her face,
‘that gentleman, I will not attempt to conceal from you, desires
my hand in marriage, and presses me with the most respectful ardour.
Alas, what am I to say? I, the forlorn Teresa, how shall I refuse
or accept such protestations?’
Harry feared to say more; a horrid pang of jealousy transfixed him;
and he had scarce the strength of mind to take his leave with decency.
In the solitude of his own chamber, he gave way to every manifestation
of despair. He passionately adored the Señorita; but it
was not only the thought of her possible union with another that distressed
his soul, it was the indefeasible conviction that her suitor was unworthy.
To a duke, a bishop, a victorious general, or any man adorned with obvious
qualities, he had resigned her with a sort of bitter joy; he saw himself
follow the wedding party from a great way off; he saw himself return
to the poor house, then robbed of its jewel; and while he could have
wept for his despair, he felt he could support it nobly. But this
affair looked otherwise. The man was patently no gentleman; he
had a startled, skulking, guilty bearing; his nails were black, his
eyes evasive; his love perhaps was a pretext; he was perhaps, under
this deep disguise, a Cuban emissary!
Harry swore that he would satisfy these doubts; and the next evening,
about the hour of the usual visit, he posted himself at a spot whence
his eye commanded the three issues of the square.
Presently after, a four-wheeler rumbled to the door, and the man with
the chin-beard alighted, paid off the cabman, and was seen by Harry
to enter the house with a brown box hoisted on his back. Half
an hour later, he came forth again without the box, and struck eastward
at a rapid walk; and Desborough, with the same skill and caution that
he had displayed in following Teresa, proceeded to dog the steps of
her admirer. The man began to loiter, studying with apparent interest
the wares of the small fruiterer or tobacconist; twice he returned hurriedly
upon his former course; and then, as though he had suddenly conquered
a moment’s hesitation, once more set forth with resolute and swift
steps in the direction of Lincoln’s Inn. At length, in a
deserted by-street, he turned; and coming up to Harry with a countenance
which seemed to have become older and whiter, inquired with some severity
of speech if he had not had the pleasure of seeing the gentleman before.
‘You have, sir,’ said Harry, somewhat abashed, but with
a good show of stoutness; ‘and I will not deny that I was following
you on purpose. Doubtless,’ he added, for he supposed that
all men’s minds must still be running on Teresa, ‘you can
divine my reason.’
At these words, the man with the chin-beard was seized with a palsied
tremor. He seemed, for some seconds, to seek the utterance which
his fear denied him; and then whipping sharply about, he took to his
heels at the most furious speed of running.
Harry was at first so taken aback that he neglected to pursue; and by
the time he had recovered his wits, his best expedition was only rewarded
by a glimpse of the man with the chin-beard mounting into a hansom,
which immediately after disappeared into the moving crowds of Holborn.
Puzzled and dismayed by this unusual behaviour, Harry returned to the
house in Queen Square, and ventured for the first time to knock at the
fair Cuban’s door. She bade him enter, and he found her
kneeling with rather a disconsolate air beside a brown wooden trunk.
‘Señorita,’ he broke out, ‘I doubt whether
that man’s character is what he wishes you to believe. His
manner, when he found, and indeed when I admitted that I was following
him, was not the manner of an honest man.’
‘Oh!’ she cried, throwing up her hands as in desperation,
‘Don Quixote, Don Quixote, have you again been tilting against
windmills?’ And then, with a laugh, ‘Poor soul!’
she added, ‘how you must have terrified him! For know that
the Cuban authorities are here, and your poor Teresa may soon be hunted
down. Even yon humble clerk from my solicitor’s office may
find himself at any moment the quarry of armed spies.’
‘A humble clerk!’ cried Harry, ‘why, you told me yourself
that he wished to marry you!’
‘I thought you English like what you call a joke,’ replied
the lady calmly. ‘As a matter of fact, he is my lawyer’s
clerk, and has been here to-night charged with disastrous news.
I am in sore straits, Señor Harry. Will you help me?’
At this most welcome word, the young man’s heart exulted; and
in the hope, pride, and self-esteem that kindled with the very thought
of service, he forgot to dwell upon the lady’s jest. ‘Can
you ask?’ he cried. ‘What is there that I can do?
Only tell me that.’
With signs of an emotion that was certainly unfeigned, the fair Cuban
laid her hand upon the box. ‘This box,’ she said,
‘contains my jewels, papers, and clothes; all, in a word, that
still connects me with Cuba and my dreadful past. They must now
be smuggled out of England; or, by the opinion of my lawyer, I am lost
beyond remedy. To-morrow, on board the Irish packet, a sure hand
awaits the box: the problem still unsolved, is to find some one to carry
it as far as Holyhead, to see it placed on board the steamer, and instantly
return to town. Will you be he? Will you leave to-morrow
by the first train, punctually obey orders, bear still in mind that
you are surrounded by Cuban spies; and without so much as a look behind
you, or a single movement to betray your interest, leave the box where
you have put it and come straight on shore? Will you do this, and so
save your friend?’
‘I do not clearly understand . . .’ began Harry.
‘No more do I,’ replied the Cuban. ‘It is not
necessary that we should, so long as we obey the lawyer’s orders.’
‘Señorita,’ returned Harry gravely, ‘I think
this, of course, a very little thing to do for you, when I would willingly
do all. But suffer me to say one word. If London is unsafe
for your treasures, it cannot long be safe for you; and indeed, if I
at all fathom the plan of your solicitor, I fear I may find you already
fled on my return. I am not considered clever, and can only speak
out plainly what is in my heart: that I love you, and that I cannot
bear to lose all knowledge of you. I hope no more than to be your
servant; I ask no more than just that I shall hear of you. Oh,
promise me so much!’
‘You shall,’ she said, after a pause. ‘I promise
you, you shall.’ But though she spoke with earnestness,
the marks of great embarrassment and a strong conflict of emotions appeared
upon her face.
‘I wish to tell you,’ resumed Desborough, ‘in case
of accidents. . . .’
‘Accidents!’ she cried: ‘why do you say that?’
‘I do not know,’ said he, ‘you may be gone before
my return, and we may not meet again for long. And so I wished
you to know this: That since the day you gave me the cigarette, you
have never once, not once, been absent from my mind; and if it will
in any way serve you, you may crumple me up like that piece of paper,
and throw me on the fire. I would love to die for you.’
‘Go!’ she said. ‘Go now at once. My brain
is in a whirl. I scarce know what we are talking. Go; and
good-night; and oh, may you come safe!’
Once back in his own room a fearful joy possessed the young man’s
mind; and as he recalled her face struck suddenly white and the broken
utterance of her last words, his heart at once exulted and misgave him.
Love had indeed looked upon him with a tragic mask; and yet what mattered,
since at least it was love - since at least she was commoved at their
division? He got to bed with these parti-coloured thoughts; passed
from one dream to another all night long, the white face of Teresa still
haunting him, wrung with unspoken thoughts; and in the grey of the dawn,
leaped suddenly out of bed, in a kind of horror. It was already
time for him to rise. He dressed, made his breakfast on cold food
that had been laid for him the night before; and went down to the room
of his idol for the box. The door was open; a strange disorder
reigned within; the furniture all pushed aside, and the centre of the
room left bare of impediment, as though for the pacing of a creature
with a tortured mind. There lay the box, however, and upon the
lid a paper with these words: ‘Harry, I hope to be back before
you go. Teresa.’
He sat down to wait, laying his watch before him on the table.
She had called him Harry: that should be enough, he thought, to fill
the day with sunshine; and yet somehow the sight of that disordered
room still poisoned his enjoyment. The door of the bed-chamber
stood gaping open; and though he turned aside his eyes as from a sacrilege,
he could not but observe the bed had not been slept in. He was
still pondering what this should mean, still trying to convince himself
that all was well, when the moving needle of his watch summoned him
to set forth without delay. He was before all things a man of
his word; ran round to Southampton Row to fetch a cab; and taking the
box on the front seat, drove off towards the terminus.
The streets were scarcely awake; there was little to amuse the eye;
and the young man’s attention centred on the dumb companion of
his drive. A card was nailed upon one side, bearing the superscription:
‘Miss Doolan, passenger to Dublin. Glass. With care.’
He thought with a sentimental shock that the fair idol of his heart
was perhaps driven to adopt the name of Doolan; and as he still studied
the card, he was aware of a deadly, black depression settling steadily
upon his spirits. It was in vain for him to contend against the
tide; in vain that he shook himself or tried to whistle: the sense of
some impending blow was not to be averted. He looked out; in the
long, empty streets, the cab pursued its way without a trace of any
follower. He gave ear; and over and above the jolting of the wheels
upon the road, he was conscious of a certain regular and quiet sound
that seemed to issue from the box. He put his ear to the cover;
at one moment, he seemed to perceive a delicate ticking: the next, the
sound was gone, nor could his closest hearkening recapture it.
He laughed at himself; but still the gloom continued; and it was with
more than the common relief of an arrival, that he leaped from the cab
before the station.
Probably enough on purpose, Teresa had named an hour some thirty minutes
earlier than needful; and when Harry had given the box into the charge
of a porter, who sat it on a truck, he proceeded briskly to pace the
platform. Presently the bookstall opened; and the young man was
looking at the books when he was seized by the arm. He turned,
and, though she was closely veiled, at once recognised the Fair Cuban.
‘Where is it?’ she asked; and the sound of her voice surprised
him.
‘It?’ he said. ‘What?’
‘The box. Have it put on a cab instantly. I am in
fearful haste.’
He hurried to obey, marvelling at these changes, but not daring to trouble
her with questions; and when the cab had been brought round, and the
box mounted on the front, she passed a little way off upon the pavement
and beckoned him to follow.
‘Now,’ said she, still in those mechanical and hushed tones
that had at first affected him, ‘you must go on to Holyhead alone;
go on board the steamer; and if you see a man in tartan trousers and
a pink scarf, say to him that all has been put off: if not,’ she
added, with a sobbing sigh, ‘it does not matter. So, good-bye.’
‘Teresa,’ said Harry, ‘get into your cab, and I will
go along with you. You are in some distress, perhaps some danger;
and till I know the whole, not even you can make me leave you.’
‘You will not?’ she asked. ‘O Harry, it were
better!’
‘I will not,’ said Harry stoutly.
She looked at him for a moment through her veil; took his hand suddenly
and sharply, but more as if in fear than tenderness; and still holding
him, walked to the cab-door.
‘Where are we to drive?’ asked Harry.
‘Home, quickly,’ she answered; ‘double fare!’
And as soon as they had both mounted to their places, the vehicle crazily
trundled from the station.
Teresa leaned back in a corner. The whole way Harry could perceive
her tears to flow under her veil; but she vouchsafed no explanation.
At the door of the house in Queen Square, both alighted; and the cabman
lowered the box, which Harry, glad to display his strength, received
upon his shoulders.
‘Let the man take it,’ she whispered. ‘Let the
man take it.’
‘I will do no such thing,’ said Harry cheerfully; and having
paid the fare, he followed Teresa through the door which she had opened
with her key. The landlady and maid were gone upon their morning
errands; the house was empty and still; and as the rattling of the cab
died away down Gloucester Street, and Harry continued to ascend the
stair with his burthen, he heard close against his shoulders the same
faint and muffled ticking as before. The lady, still preceding
him, opened the door of her room, and helped him to lower the box tenderly
in the corner by the window.
‘And now,’ said Harry, ‘what is wrong?’
‘You will not go away?’ she cried, with a sudden break in
her voice and beating her hands together in the very agony of impatience.
‘O Harry, Harry, go away! Oh, go, and leave me to the fate
that I deserve!’
‘The fate?’ repeated Harry. ‘What is this?’
‘No fate,’ she resumed. ‘I do not know what
I am saying. But I wish to be alone. You may come back this
evening, Harry; come again when you like; but leave me now, only leave
me now!’ And then suddenly, ‘I have an errand,’
she exclaimed; ‘you cannot refuse me that!’
‘No,’ replied Harry, ‘you have no errand. You
are in grief or danger. Lift your veil and tell me what it is.’
‘Then,’ she said, with a sudden composure, ‘you leave
but one course open to me.’ And raising the veil, she showed
him a countenance from which every trace of colour had fled, eyes marred
with weeping, and a brow on which resolve had conquered fear.
‘Harry,’ she began, ‘I am not what I seem.’
‘You have told me that before,’ said Harry, ‘several
times.’
‘O Harry, Harry,’ she cried, ‘how you shame me!
But this is the God’s truth. I am a dangerous and wicked
girl. My name is Clara Luxmore. I was never nearer Cuba
than Penzance. From first to last I have cheated and played with
you. And what I am I dare not even name to you in words.
Indeed, until to-day, until the sleepless watches of last night, I never
grasped the depth and foulness of my guilt.’
The young man looked upon her aghast. Then a generous current
poured along his veins. ‘That is all one,’ he said.
‘If you be all you say, you have the greater need of me.’
‘Is it possible,’ she exclaimed, ‘that I have schemed
in vain? And will nothing drive you from this house of death?’
‘Of death?’ he echoed.
‘Death!’ she cried: ‘death! In that box that
you have dragged about London and carried on your defenceless shoulders,
sleep, at the trigger’s mercy, the destroying energies of dynamite.’
‘My God!’ cried Harry.
‘Ah!’ she continued wildly, ‘will you flee now?
At any moment you may hear the click that sounds the ruin of this building.
I was sure M’Guire was wrong; this morning, before day, I flew
to Zero; he confirmed my fears; I beheld you, my beloved Harry, fall
a victim to my own contrivances. I knew then I loved you - Harry,
will you go now? Will you not spare me this unwilling crime?’
Harry remained speechless, his eyes fixed upon the box: at last he turned
to her.
‘Is it,’ he asked hoarsely, ‘an infernal machine?’
Her lips formed the word ‘Yes,’ which her voice refused
to utter.
With fearful curiosity, he drew near and bent above the box; in that
still chamber, the ticking was distinctly audible; and at the measured
sound, the blood flowed back upon his heart.
‘For whom?’ he asked.
‘What matters it,’ she cried, seizing him by the arm.
‘If you may still be saved, what matter questions?’
‘God in heaven!’ cried Harry. ‘And the Children’s
Hospital! At whatever cost, this damned contrivance must be stopped!’
‘It cannot,’ she gasped. ‘The power of man cannot
avert the blow. But you, Harry - you, my beloved - you may still
- ’
And then from the box that lay so quietly in the corner, a sudden catch
was audible, like the catch of a clock before it strikes the hour.
For one second the two stared at each other with lifted brows and stony
eyes. Then Harry, throwing one arm over his face, with the other
clutched the girl to his breast and staggered against the wall.
A dull and startling thud resounded through the room; their eyes blinked
against the coming horror; and still clinging together like drowning
people, they fell to the floor. Then followed a prolonged and
strident hissing as from the indignant pit; an offensive stench seized
them by the throat; the room was filled with dense and choking fumes.
Presently these began a little to disperse: and when at length they
drew themselves, all limp and shaken, to a sitting posture, the first
object that greeted their vision was the box reposing uninjured in its
corner, but still leaking little wreaths of vapour round the lid.
‘Oh, poor Zero!’ cried the girl, with a strange sobbing
laugh. ‘Alas, poor Zero! This will break his heart!’
THE SUPERFLUOUS MANSION (Concluded)
Somerset ran straight upstairs; the door of the drawing-room, contrary
to all custom, was unlocked; and bursting in, the young man found Zero
seated on a sofa in an attitude of singular dejection. Close beside
him stood an untasted grog, the mark of strong preoccupation.
The room besides was in confusion: boxes had been tumbled to and fro;
the floor was strewn with keys and other implements; and in the midst
of this disorder lay a lady’s glove.
‘I have come,’ cried Somerset, ‘to make an end of
this. Either you will instantly abandon all your schemes, or (cost
what it may) I will denounce you to the police.’
‘Ah!’ replied Zero, slowly shaking his head. ‘You
are too late, dear fellow! I am already at the end of all my hopes,
and fallen to be a laughing-stock and mockery. My reading,’
he added, with a gentle despondency of manner, ‘has not been much
among romances; yet I recall from one a phrase that depicts my present
state with critical exactitude; and you behold me sitting here “like
a burst drum.”’
‘What has befallen you?’ cried Somerset.
‘My last batch,’ returned the plotter wearily, ‘like
all the others, is a hollow mockery and a fraud. In vain do I
combine the elements; in vain adjust the springs; and I have now arrived
at such a pitch of disconsideration that (except yourself, dear fellow)
I do not know a soul that I can face. My subordinates themselves
have turned upon me. What language have I heard to-day, what illiberality
of sentiment, what pungency of expression! She came once; I could
have pardoned that, for she was moved; but she returned, returned to
announce to me this crushing blow; and, Somerset, she was very inhumane.
Yes, dear fellow, I have drunk a bitter cup; the speech of females is
remarkable for . . . well, well! Denounce me, if you will; you
but denounce the dead. I am extinct. It is strange how,
at this supreme crisis of my life, I should be haunted by quotations
from works of an inexact and even fanciful description; but here,’
he added, ‘is another: “Othello’s occupation’s
gone.” Yes, dear Somerset, it is gone; I am no more a dynamiter;
and how, I ask you, after having tasted of these joys, am I to condescend
to a less glorious life?’
‘I cannot describe how you relieve me,’ returned Somerset,
sitting down on one of several boxes that had been drawn out into the
middle of the floor. ‘I had conceived a sort of maudlin
toleration for your character; I have a great distaste, besides, for
anything in the nature of a duty; and upon both grounds, your news delights
me. But I seem to perceive,’ he added, ‘a certain
sound of ticking in this box.’
‘Yes,’ replied Zero, with the same slow weariness of manner,
‘I have set several of them going.’
‘My God!’ cried Somerset, bounding to his feet.
‘Machines?’
‘Machines!’ returned the plotter bitterly. ‘Machines
indeed! I blush to be their author. Alas!’ he said,
burying his face in his hands, ‘that I should live to say it!’
‘Madman!’ cried Somerset, shaking him by the arm.
‘What am I to understand? Have you, indeed, set these diabolical
contrivances in motion? and do we stay here to be blown up?’
‘“Hoist with his own petard?”’ returned the
plotter musingly. ‘One more quotation: strange! But
indeed my brain is struck with numbness. Yes, dear boy, I have,
as you say, put my contrivance in motion. The one on which you
are sitting, I have timed for half an hour. Yon other - ’
‘Half an hour! - ’ echoed Somerset, dancing with trepidation.
‘Merciful Heavens, in half an hour?’
‘Dear fellow, why so much excitement?’ inquired Zero.
‘My dynamite is not more dangerous than toffy; had I an only child,
I would give it him to play with. You see this brick?’ he
continued, lifting a cake of the infernal compound from the laboratory-table.
‘At a touch it should explode, and that with such unconquerable
energy as should bestrew the square with ruins. Well now, behold!
I dash it on the floor.’
Somerset sprang forward, and with the strength of the very ecstasy of
terror, wrested the brick from his possession. ‘Heavens!’
he cried, wiping his brow; and then with more care than ever mother
handled her first-born withal, gingerly transported the explosive to
the far end of the apartment: the plotter, his arms once more fallen
to his side, dispiritedly watching him.
‘It was entirely harmless,’ he sighed. ‘They
describe it as burning like tobacco.’
‘In the name of fortune,’ cried Somerset, ‘what have
I done to you, or what have you done to yourself, that you should persist
in this insane behaviour? If not for your own sake, then for mine,
let us depart from this doomed house, where I profess I have not the
heart to leave you; and then, if you will take my advice, and if your
determination be sincere, you will instantly quit this city, where no
further occupation can detain you.’
‘Such, dear fellow, was my own design,’ replied the plotter.
‘I have, as you observe, no further business here; and once I
have packed a little bag, I shall ask you to share a frugal meal, to
go with me as far as to the station, and see the last of a broken-hearted
man. And yet,’ he added, looking on the boxes with a lingering
regret, ‘I should have liked to make quite certain. I cannot
but suspect my underlings of some mismanagement; it may be fond, but
yet I cherish that idea: it may be the weakness of a man of science,
but yet,’ he cried, rising into some energy, ‘I will never,
I cannot if I try, believe that my poor dynamite has had fair usage!’
‘Five minutes!’ said Somerset, glancing with horror at the
timepiece. ‘If you do not instantly buckle to your bag,
I leave you.’
‘A few necessaries,’ returned Zero, ‘only a few necessaries,
dear Somerset, and you behold me ready.’
He passed into the bedroom, and after an interval which seemed to draw
out into eternity for his unfortunate companion, he returned, bearing
in his hand an open Gladstone bag. His movements were still horribly
deliberate, and his eyes lingered gloatingly on his dear boxes, as he
moved to and fro about the drawing-room, gathering a few small trifles.
Last of all, he lifted one of the squares of dynamite.
‘Put that down!’ cried Somerset. ‘If what you
say be true, you have no call to load yourself with that ungodly contraband.’
‘Merely a curiosity, dear boy,’ he said persuasively, and
slipped the brick into his bag; ‘merely a memento of the past
- ah, happy past, bright past! You will not take a touch of spirits?
no? I find you very abstemious. Well,’ he added, ‘if
you have really no curiosity to await the event - ’
‘I!’ cried Somerset. ‘My blood boils to get
away.’
‘Well, then,’ said Zero, ‘I am ready; I would I could
say, willing; but thus to leave the scene of my sublime endeavours -
’
Without further parley, Somerset seized him by the arm, and dragged
him downstairs; the hall-door shut with a clang on the deserted mansion;
and still towing his laggardly companion, the young man sped across
the square in the Oxford Street direction. They had not yet passed
the corner of the garden, when they were arrested by a dull thud of
an extraordinary amplitude of sound, accompanied and followed by a shattering
fracas. Somerset turned in time to see the mansion rend in
twain, vomit forth flames and smoke, and instantly collapse into its
cellars. At the same moment, he was thrown violently to the ground.
His first glance was towards Zero. The plotter had but reeled
against the garden rail; he stood there, the Gladstone bag clasped tight
upon his heart, his whole face radiant with relief and gratitude; and
the young man heard him murmur to himself: ‘Nunc dimittis,
nunc dimittis!’
The consternation of the populace was indescribable; the whole of Golden
Square was alive with men, women, and children, running wildly to and
fro, and like rabbits in a warren, dashing in and out of the house doors.
And under favour of this confusion, Somerset dragged away the lingering
plotter.
‘It was grand,’ he continued to murmur: ‘it was indescribably
grand. Ah, green Erin, green Erin, what a day of glory! and oh,
my calumniated dynamite, how triumphantly hast thou prevailed!’
Suddenly a shade crossed his face; and pausing in the middle of the
footway, he consulted the dial of his watch.
‘Good God!’ he cried, ‘how mortifying! seven minutes
too early! The dynamite surpassed my hopes; but the clockwork,
fickle clockwork, has once more betrayed me. Alas, can there be
no success unmixed with failure? and must even this red-letter day be
chequered by a shadow?’
‘Incomparable ass!’ said Somerset, ‘what have you
done? Blown up the house of an unoffending old lady, and the whole
earthly property of the only person who is fool enough to befriend you!’
‘You do not understand these matters,’ replied Zero, with
an air of great dignity. ‘This will shake England to the
heart. Gladstone, the truculent old man, will quail before the
pointing finger of revenge. And now that my dynamite is proved
effective - ’
‘Heavens, you remind me!’ ejaculated Somerset. ‘That
brick in your bag must be instantly disposed of. But how?
If we could throw it in the river - ’
‘A torpedo,’ cried Zero, brightening, ‘a torpedo in
the Thames! Superb, dear fellow! I recognise in you the
marks of an accomplished anarch.’
‘True!’ returned Somerset. ‘It cannot so be
done; and there is no help but you must carry it away with you.
Come on, then, and let me at once consign you to a train.’
‘Nay, nay, dear boy,’ protested Zero. ‘There
is now no call for me to leave. My character is now reinstated;
my fame brightens; this is the best thing I have done yet; and I see
from here the ovations that await the author of the Golden Square Atrocity.’
‘My young friend,’ returned the other, ‘I give you
your choice. I will either see you safe on board a train or safe
in gaol.’
‘Somerset, this is unlike you!’ said the chymist.
‘You surprise me, Somerset.’
‘I shall considerably more surprise you at the next police office,’
returned Somerset, with something bordering on rage. ‘For
on one point my mind is settled: either I see you packed off to America,
brick and all, or else you dine in prison.’
‘You have perhaps neglected one point,’ returned the unoffended
Zero: ‘for, speaking as a philosopher, I fail to see what means
you can employ to force me. The will, my dear fellow - ’
‘Now, see here,’ interrupted Somerset. ‘You
are ignorant of anything but science, which I can never regard as being
truly knowledge; I, sir, have studied life; and allow me to inform you
that I have but to raise my hand and voice - here in this street - and
the mob - ’
‘Good God in heaven, Somerset,’ cried Zero, turning deadly
white and stopping in his walk, ‘great God in heaven, what words
are these? Oh, not in jest, not even in jest, should they be used!
The brutal mob, the savage passions . . . . Somerset, for God’s
sake, a public-house!’
Somerset considered him with freshly awakened curiosity. ‘This
is very interesting,’ said he. ‘You recoil from such
a death?’
‘Who would not?’ asked the plotter.
‘And to be blown up by dynamite,’ inquired the young man,
‘doubtless strikes you as a form of euthanasia?’
‘Pardon me,’ returned Zero: ‘I own, and since I have
braved it daily in my professional career, I own it even with pride:
it is a death unusually distasteful to the mind of man.’
‘One more question,’ said Somerset: ‘you object to
Lynch Law? why?’
‘It is assassination,’ said the plotter calmly, but with
eyebrows a little lifted, as in wonder at the question.
‘Shake hands with me,’ cried Somerset. ‘Thank
God, I have now no ill-feeling left; and though you cannot conceive
how I burn to see you on the gallows, I can quite contentedly assist
at your departure.’
‘I do not very clearly take your meaning,’ said Zero, ‘but
I am sure you mean kindly. As to my departure, there is another
point to be considered. I have neglected to supply myself with
funds; my little all has perished in what history will love to relate
under the name of the Golden Square Atrocity; and without what is coarsely
if vigorously called stamps, you must be well aware it is impossible
for me to pass the ocean.’
‘For me,’ said Somerset, ‘you have now ceased to be
a man. You have no more claim upon me than a door scraper; but
the touching confusion of your mind disarms me from extremities.
Until to-day, I always thought stupidity was funny; I now know otherwise;
and when I look upon your idiot face, laughter rises within me like
a deadly sickness, and the tears spring up into my eyes as bitter as
blood. What should this portend? I begin to doubt; I am
losing faith in scepticism. Is it possible,’ he cried, in
a kind of horror of himself - ‘is it conceivable that I believe
in right and wrong? Already I have found myself, with incredulous
surprise, to be the victim of a prejudice of personal honour.
And must this change proceed? Have you robbed me of my youth?
Must I fall, at my time of life, into the Common Banker? But why
should I address that head of wood? Let this suffice. I
dare not let you stay among women and children; I lack the courage to
denounce you, if by any means I may avoid it; you have no money: well
then, take mine, and go; and if ever I behold your face after to-day,
that day will be your last.’
‘Under the circumstances,’ replied Zero, ‘I scarce
see my way to refuse your offer. Your expressions may pain, they
cannot surprise me; I am aware our point of view requires a little training,
a little moral hygiene, if I may so express it; and one of the points
that has always charmed me in your character is this delightful frankness.
As for the small advance, it shall be remitted you from Philadelphia.’
‘It shall not,’ said Somerset.
‘Dear fellow, you do not understand,’ returned the plotter.
‘I shall now be received with fresh confidence by my superiors;
and my experiments will be no longer hampered by pitiful conditions
of the purse.’
‘What I am now about, sir, is a crime,’ replied Somerset;
‘and were you to roll in wealth like Vanderbilt, I should scorn
to be reimbursed of money I had so scandalously misapplied. Take
it, and keep it. By George, sir, three days of you have transformed
me to an ancient Roman.’
With these words, Somerset hailed a passing hansom; and the pair were
driven rapidly to the railway terminus. There, an oath having
been exacted, the money changed hands.
‘And now,’ said Somerset, ‘I have bought back my honour
with every penny I possess. And I thank God, though there is nothing
before me but starvation, I am free from all entanglement with Mr. Zero
Pumpernickel Jones.’
‘To starve?’ cried Zero. ‘Dear fellow, I cannot
endure the thought.’
‘Take your ticket!’ returned Somerset.
‘I think you display temper,’ said Zero.
‘Take your ticket,’ reiterated the young man.
‘Well,’ said the plotter, as he returned, ticket in hand,
‘your attitude is so strange and painful, that I scarce know if
I should ask you to shake hands.’
‘As a man, no,’ replied Somerset; ‘but I have no objection
to shake hands with you, as I might with a pump-well that ran poison
or bell-fire.’
‘This is a very cold parting,’ sighed the dynamiter; and
still followed by Somerset, he began to descend the platform.
This was now bustling with passengers; the train for Liverpool was just
about to start, another had but recently arrived; and the double tide
made movement difficult. As the pair reached the neighbourhood
of the bookstall, however, they came into an open space; and here the
attention of the plotter was attracted by a Standard broadside
bearing the words: ‘Second Edition: Explosion in Golden Square.’
His eye lighted; groping in his pocket for the necessary coin, he sprang
forward - his bag knocked sharply on the corner of the stall - and instantly,
with a formidable report, the dynamite exploded. When the smoke
cleared away the stall was seen much shattered, and the stall keeper
running forth in terror from the ruins; but of the Irish patriot or
the Gladstone bag no adequate remains were to be found.
In the first scramble of the alarm, Somerset made good his escape, and
came out upon the Euston Road, his head spinning, his body sick with
hunger, and his pockets destitute of coin. Yet as he continued
to walk the pavements, he wondered to find in his heart a sort of peaceful
exultation, a great content, a sense, as it were, of divine presence
and the kindliness of fate; and he was able to tell himself that even
if the worst befell, he could now starve with a certain comfort since
Zero was expunged.
Late in the afternoon, he found himself at the door of Mr. Godall’s
shop; and being quite unmanned by his long fast, and scarce considering
what he did, he opened the glass door and entered.
‘Ha!’ said Mr. Godall, ‘Mr. Somerset! Well,
have you met with an adventure? Have you the promised story?
Sit down, if you please; suffer me to choose you a cigar of my own special
brand; and reward me with a narrative in your best style.’
‘I must not take a cigar,’ said Somerset.
‘Indeed!’ said Mr. Godall. ‘But now I come to
look at you more closely, I perceive that you are changed. My
poor boy, I hope there is nothing wrong?’
Somerset burst into tears.
EPILOGUE OF THE CIGAR DIVAN
On a certain day of lashing rain in the December of last year, and
between the hours of nine and ten in the morning, Mr. Edward Challoner
pioneered himself under an umbrella to the door of the Cigar Divan in
Rupert Street. It was a place he had visited but once before:
the memory of what had followed on that visit and the fear of Somerset
having prevented his return. Even now, he looked in before he
entered; but the shop was free of customers.
The young man behind the counter was so intently writing in a penny
version-book, that he paid no heed to Challoner’s arrival.
On a second glance, it seemed to the latter that he recognised him.
‘By Jove,’ he thought, ‘unquestionably Somerset!’
And though this was the very man he had been so sedulously careful to
avoid, his unexplained position at the receipt of custom changed distaste
to curiosity.
‘“Or opulent rotunda strike the sky,”’ said
the shopman to himself, in the tone of one considering a verse.
‘I suppose it would be too much to say “orotunda,”
and yet how noble it were! “Or opulent orotunda strike the
sky.” But that is the bitterness of arts; you see a good
effect, and some nonsense about sense continually intervenes.’
‘Somerset, my dear fellow,’ said Challoner, ‘is this
a masquerade?’
‘What? Challoner!’ cried the shopman. ‘I
am delighted to see you. One moment, till I finish the octave
of my sonnet: only the octave.’ And with a friendly waggle
of the hand, he once more buried himself in the commerce of the Muses.
‘I say,’ he said presently, looking up, ‘you seem
in wonderful preservation: how about the hundred pounds?’
‘I have made a small inheritance from a great aunt in Wales,’
replied Challoner modestly.
‘Ah,’ said Somerset, ‘I very much doubt the legitimacy
of inheritance. The State, in my view, should collar it.
I am now going through a stage of socialism and poetry,’ he added
apologetically, as one who spoke of a course of medicinal waters.
‘And are you really the person of the - establishment?’
inquired Challoner, deftly evading the word ‘shop.’
‘A vendor, sir, a vendor,’ returned the other, pocketing
his poesy. ‘I help old Happy and Glorious. Can I offer
you a weed?’
‘Well, I scarcely like . . . ’ began Challoner.
‘Nonsense, my dear fellow,’ cried the shopman. ‘We
are very proud of the business; and the old man, let me inform you,
besides being the most egregious of created beings from the point of
view of ethics, is literally sprung from the loins of kings. “De
Godall je suis le fervent.” There is only one Godall.
- By the way,’ he added, as Challoner lit his cigar, ‘how
did you get on with the detective trade?’
‘I did not try,’ said Challoner curtly.
‘Ah, well, I did,’ returned Somerset, ‘and made the
most incomparable mess of it: lost all my money and fairly covered myself
with odium and ridicule. There is more in that business, Challoner,
than meets the eye; there is more, in fact, in all businesses.
You must believe in them, or get up the belief that you believe.
Hence,’ he added, ‘the recognised inferiority of the plumber,
for no one could believe in plumbing.’
‘A propos,’ asked Challoner, ‘do you still
paint?’
‘Not now,’ replied Paul; ‘but I think of taking up
the violin.’
Challoner’s eye, which had been somewhat restless since the trade
of the detective had been named, now rested for a moment on the columns
of the morning paper, where it lay spread upon the counter.
‘By Jove,’ he cried, ‘that’s odd!’
‘What is odd?’ asked Paul.
‘Oh, nothing,’ returned the other: ‘only I once met
a person called M’Guire.’
‘So did I!’ cried Somerset. ‘Is there anything
about him?’
Challoner read as follows: ‘Mysterious death in Stepney.
An inquest was held yesterday on the body of Patrick M’Guire,
described as a carpenter. Doctor Dovering stated that he had for
some time treated the deceased as a dispensary patient, for sleeplessness,
loss of appetite, and nervous depression. There was no cause of
death to be found. He would say the deceased had sunk. Deceased
was not a temperate man, which doubtless accelerated death. Deceased
complained of dumb ague, but witness had never been able to detect any
positive disease. He did not know that he had any family.
He regarded him as a person of unsound intellect, who believed himself
a member and the victim of some secret society. If he were to
hazard an opinion, he would say deceased had died of fear.’
‘And the doctor would be right,’ cried Somerset; ‘and
my dear Challoner, I am so relieved to hear of his demise, that I will
- Well, after all,’ he added, ‘poor devil, he was well served.’
The door at this moment opened, and Desborough appeared upon the threshold.
He was wrapped in a long waterproof, imperfectly supplied with buttons;
his boots were full of water, his hat greasy with service; and yet he
wore the air of one exceeding well content with life. He was hailed
by the two others with exclamations of surprise and welcome.
‘And did you try the detective business?’ inquired Paul.
‘No,’ returned Harry. ‘Oh yes, by the way, I
did though: twice, and got caught out both times. But I thought
I should find my - my wife here?’ he added, with a kind of proud
confusion.
‘What? are you married?’ cried Somerset.
‘Oh yes,’ said Harry, ‘quite a long time: a month
at least.’
‘Money?’ asked Challoner.
‘That’s the worst of it,’ Desborough admitted.
‘We are deadly hard up. But the Pri--- Mr. Godall is going
to do something for us. That is what brings us here.’
‘Who was Mrs. Desborough?’ said Challoner, in the tone of
a man of society.
‘She was a Miss Luxmore,’ returned Harry. ‘You
fellows will be sure to like her, for she is much cleverer than I.
She tells wonderful stories, too; better than a book.’
And just then the door opened, and Mrs. Desborough entered. Somerset
cried out aloud to recognise the young lady of the Superfluous Mansion,
and Challoner fell back a step and dropped his cigar as he beheld the
sorceress of Chelsea.
‘What!’ cried Harry, ‘do you both know my wife?’
‘I believe I have seen her,’ said Somerset, a little wildly.
‘I think I have met the gentleman,’ said Mrs. Desborough
sweetly; ‘but I cannot imagine where it was.’
‘Oh no,’ cried Somerset fervently: ‘I have no notion
- I cannot conceive - where it could have been. Indeed,’
he continued, growing in emphasis, ‘I think it highly probable
that it’s a mistake.’
‘And you, Challoner?’ asked Harry, ‘you seemed to
recognise her too.’
‘These are both friends of yours, Harry?’ said the lady.
‘Delighted, I am sure. I do not remember to have met Mr.
Challoner.’
Challoner was very red in the face, perhaps from having groped after
his cigar. ‘I do not remember to have had the pleasure,’
he responded huskily.
‘Well, and Mr. Godall?’ asked Mrs. Desborough.
‘Are you the lady that has an appointment with old - ’ began
Somerset, and paused blushing. ‘Because if so,’ he
resumed, ‘I was to announce you at once.’
And the shopman raised a curtain, opened a door, and passed into a small
pavilion which had been added to the back of the house. On the
roof, the rain resounded musically. The walls were lined with
maps and prints and a few works of reference. Upon a table was
a large-scale map of Egypt and the Soudan, and another of Tonkin, on
which, by the aid of coloured pins, the progress of the different wars
was being followed day by day. A light, refreshing odour of the
most delicate tobacco hung upon the air; and a fire, not of foul coal,
but of clear-flaming resinous billets, chattered upon silver dogs.
In this elegant and plain apartment, Mr. Godall sat in a morning muse,
placidly gazing at the fire and hearkening to the rain upon the roof.
‘Ha, my dear Mr. Somerset,’ said he, ‘and have you
since last night adopted any fresh political principle?’
‘The lady, sir,’ said Somerset, with another blush.
‘You have seen her, I believe?’ returned Mr. Godall; and
on Somerset’s replying in the affirmative, ‘You will excuse
me, my dear sir,’ he resumed, ‘if I offer you a hint.
I think it not improbable this lady may desire entirely to forget the
past. From one gentleman to another, no more words are necessary.’
A moment after, he had received Mrs. Desborough with that grave and
touching urbanity that so well became him.
‘I am pleased, madam, to welcome you to my poor house,’
he said; ‘and shall be still more so, if what were else a barren
courtesy and a pleasure personal to myself, shall prove to be of serious
benefit to you and Mr. Desborough.’
‘Your Highness,’ replied Clara, ‘I must begin with
thanks; it is like what I have heard of you, that you should thus take
up the case of the unfortunate; and as for my Harry, he is worthy of
all that you can do.’ She paused.
‘But for yourself?’ suggested Mr. Godall - ‘it was
thus you were about to continue, I believe.’
‘You take the words out of my mouth,’ she said. ‘For
myself, it is different.’
‘I am not here to be a judge of men,’ replied the Prince;
‘still less of women. I am now a private person like yourself
and many million others; but I am one who still fights upon the side
of quiet. Now, madam, you know better than I, and God better than
you, what you have done to mankind in the past; I pause not to inquire;
it is with the future I concern myself, it is for the future I demand
security. I would not willingly put arms into the hands of a disloyal
combatant; and I dare not restore to wealth one of the levyers of a
private and a barbarous war. I speak with some severity, and yet
I pick my terms. I tell myself continually that you are a woman;
and a voice continually reminds me of the children whose lives and limbs
you have endangered. A woman,’ he repeated solemnly - ‘and
children. Possibly, madam, when you are yourself a mother, you
will feel the bite of that antithesis: possibly when you kneel at night
beside a cradle, a fear will fall upon you, heavier than any shame;
and when your child lies in the pain and danger of disease, you shall
hesitate to kneel before your Maker.’
‘You look at the fault,’ she said, ‘and not at the
excuse. Has your own heart never leaped within you at some story
of oppression? But, alas, no! for you were born upon a throne.’
‘I was born of woman,’ said the Prince; ‘I came forth
from my mother’s agony, helpless as a wren, like other nurselings.
This, which you forgot, I have still faithfully remembered. Is
it not one of your English poets, that looked abroad upon the earth
and saw vast circumvallations, innumerable troops manoeuvring, warships
at sea and a great dust of battles on shore; and casting anxiously about
for what should be the cause of so many and painful preparations, spied
at last, in the centre of all, a mother and her babe? These, madam,
are my politics; and the verses, which are by Mr. Coventry Patmore,
I have caused to be translated into the Bohemian tongue. Yes,
these are my politics: to change what we can, to better what we can;
but still to bear in mind that man is but a devil weakly fettered by
some generous beliefs and impositions, and for no word however nobly
sounding, and no cause however just and pious, to relax the stricture
of these bonds.’
There was a silence of a moment.
‘I fear, madam,’ resumed the Prince, ‘that I but weary
you. My views are formal like myself; and like myself, they also
begin to grow old. But I must still trouble you for some reply.’
‘I can say but one thing,’ said Mrs. Desborough: ‘I
love my husband.’
‘It is a good answer,’ returned the Prince; ‘and you
name a good influence, but one that need not be conterminous with life.’
‘I will not play at pride with such a man as you,’ she answered.
‘What do you ask of me? not protestations, I am sure. What
shall I say? I have done much that I cannot defend and that I
would not do again. Can I say more? Yes: I can say this:
I never abused myself with the muddle-headed fairy tales of politics.
I was at least prepared to meet reprisals. While I was levying
war myself - or levying murder, if you choose the plainer term - I never
accused my adversaries of assassination. I never felt or feigned
a righteous horror, when a price was put upon my life by those whom
I attacked. I never called the policeman a hireling. I may
have been a criminal, in short; but I never was a fool.’
‘Enough, madam,’ returned the Prince: ‘more than enough!
Your words are most reviving to my spirits; for in this age, when even
the assassin is a sentimentalist, there is no virtue greater in my eyes
than intellectual clarity. Suffer me, then, to ask you to retire;
for by the signal of that bell, I perceive my old friend, your mother,
to be close at hand. With her I promise you to do my utmost.’
And as Mrs. Desborough returned to the Divan, the Prince, opening a
door upon the other side, admitted Mrs. Luxmore.
‘Madam and my very good friend,’ said he, ‘is my face
so much changed that you no longer recognise Prince Florizel in Mr.
Godall?’
‘To be sure!’ she cried, looking at him through her glasses.
‘I have always regarded your Highness as a perfect man; and in
your altered circumstances, of which I have already heard with deep
regret, I will beg you to consider my respect increased instead of lessened.’
‘I have found it so,’ returned the Prince, ‘with every
class of my acquaintance. But, madam, I pray you to be seated.
My business is of a delicate order, and regards your daughter.’
‘In that case,’ said Mrs. Luxmore, ‘you may save yourself
the trouble of speaking, for I have fully made up my mind to have nothing
to do with her. I will not hear one word in her defence; but as
I value nothing so particularly as the virtue of justice, I think it
my duty to explain to you the grounds of my complaint. She deserted
me, her natural protector; for years, she has consorted with the most
disreputable persons; and to fill the cup of her offence, she has recently
married. I refuse to see her, or the being to whom she has linked
herself. One hundred and twenty pounds a year, I have always offered
her: I offer it again. It is what I had myself when I was her
age.’
‘Very well, madam,’ said the Prince; ‘and be that
so! But to touch upon another matter: what was the income of the
Reverend Bernard Fanshawe?’
‘My father?’ asked the spirited old lady. ‘I
believe he had seven hundred pounds in the year.’
‘You were one, I think, of several?’ pursued the Prince.
‘Of four,’ was the reply. ‘We were four daughters;
and painful as the admission is to make, a more detestable family could
scarce be found in England.’
‘Dear me!’ said the Prince. ‘And you, madam,
have an income of eight thousand?’
‘Not more than five,’ returned the old lady; ‘but
where on earth are you conducting me?’
‘To an allowance of one thousand pounds a year,’ replied
Florizel, smiling. ‘For I must not suffer you to take your
father for a rule. He was poor, you are rich. He had many
calls upon his poverty: there are none upon your wealth. And indeed,
madam, if you will let me touch this matter with a needle, there is
but one point in common to your two positions: that each had a daughter
more remarkable for liveliness than duty.’
‘I have been entrapped into this house,’ said the old lady,
getting to her feet. ‘But it shall not avail. Not
all the tobacconists in Europe . . .’
‘Ah, madam,’ interrupted Florizel, ‘before what is
referred to as my fall, you had not used such language! And since
you so much object to the simple industry by which I live, let me give
you a friendly hint. If you will not consent to support your daughter,
I shall be constrained to place that lady behind my counter, where I
doubt not she would prove a great attraction; and your son-in-law shall
have a livery and run the errands. With such young blood my business
might be doubled, and I might be bound in common gratitude to place
the name of Luxmore beside that of Godall.’
‘Your Highness,’ said the old lady, ‘I have been very
rude, and you are very cunning. I suppose the minx is on the premises.
Produce her.’
‘Let us rather observe them unperceived,’ said the Prince;
and so saying he rose and quietly drew back the curtain.
Mrs. Desborough sat with her back to them on a chair; Somerset and Harry
were hanging on her words with extraordinary interest; Challoner, alleging
some affair, had long ago withdrawn from the detested neighbourhood
of the enchantress.
‘At that moment,’ Mrs. Desborough was saying, ‘Mr
Gladstone detected the features of his cowardly assailant. A cry
rose to his lips: a cry of mingled triumph . . .’
‘That is Mr. Somerset!’ interrupted the spirited old lady,
in the highest note of her register. ‘Mr. Somerset, what
have you done with my house-property?’
‘Madam,’ said the Prince, ‘let it be mine to give
the explanation; and in the meanwhile, welcome your daughter.’
‘Well, Clara, how do you do?’ said Mrs. Luxmore. ‘It
appears I am to give you an allowance. So much the better for
you. As for Mr. Somerset, I am very ready to have an explanation;
for the whole affair, though costly, was eminently humorous. And
at any rate,’ she added, nodding to Paul, ‘he is a young
gentleman for whom I have a great affection, and his pictures were the
funniest I ever saw.’
‘I have ordered a collation,’ said the Prince. ‘Mr.
Somerset, as these are all your friends, I propose, if you please, that
you should join them at table. I will take the shop.’
Footnotes:
{1} Hereupon
the Arabian author enters on one of his digressions. Fearing,
apparently, that the somewhat eccentric views of Mr. Somerset should
throw discredit on a part of truth, he calls upon the English people
to remember with more gratitude the services of the police; to what
unobserved and solitary acts of heroism they are called; against what
odds of numbers and of arms, and for how small a reward, either in fame
or money: matter, it has appeared to the translators, too serious for
this place.
{2} In this name
the accent falls upon the e; the s is sibilant.
{3} The Arabian
author of the original has here a long passage conceived in a style
too oriental for the English reader. We subjoin a specimen, and
it seems doubtful whether it should be printed as prose or verse: ‘Any
writard who writes dynamitard shall find in me a never-resting fightard;’
and he goes on (if we correctly gather his meaning) to object to such
elegant and obviously correct spellings as lamp-lightard, corn-dealard,
apple-filchard (clearly justified by the parallel - pilchard) and opera
dancard. ‘Dynamitist,’ he adds, ‘I could understand.’
{4} The Arabian
author, with that quaint particularity of touch which our translation
usually praetermits, here registers a somewhat interesting detail.
Zero pronounced the word ‘boom;’ and the reader, if but
for the nonce, will possibly consent to follow him.
*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK, THE DYNAMITER ***
******This file should be named dynmt10h.htm or dynmt10h.zip****** Corrected EDITIONS of our EBooks get a new NUMBER, dynmt11h.htm VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, dynmt10ah.htm Project Gutenberg eBooks are often created from several printed editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the US unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we usually do not keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition. We are now trying to release all our eBooks one year in advance of the official release dates, leaving time for better editing. Please be encouraged to tell us about any error or corrections, even years after the official publication date. Please note neither this listing nor its contents are final til midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement. The official release date of all Project Gutenberg eBooks is at Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment and editing by those who wish to do so. Most people start at our Web sites at: http://gutenberg.net or http://promo.net/pg These Web sites include award-winning information about Project Gutenberg, including how to donate, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to subscribe to our email newsletter (free!). Those of you who want to download any eBook before announcement can get to them as follows, and just download by date. This is also a good way to get them instantly upon announcement, as the indexes our cataloguers produce obviously take a while after an announcement goes out in the Project Gutenberg Newsletter. http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/etext04 or ftp://ftp.ibiblio.org/pub/docs/books/gutenberg/etext04 Or /etext03, 02, 01, 00, 99, 98, 97, 96, 95, 94, 93, 92, 92, 91 or 90 Just search by the first five letters of the filename you want, as it appears in our Newsletters. Information about Project Gutenberg (one page) We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The time it takes us, a rather conservative estimate, is fifty hours to get any eBook selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. Our projected audience is one hundred million readers. If the value per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $2 million dollars per hour in 2002 as we release over 100 new text files per month: 1240 more eBooks in 2001 for a total of 4000+ We are already on our way to trying for 2000 more eBooks in 2002 If they reach just 1-2% of the world's population then the total will reach over half a trillion eBooks given away by year's end. The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away 1 Trillion eBooks! This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers, which is only about 4% of the present number of computer users. Here is the briefest record of our progress (* means estimated): eBooks Year Month 1 1971 July 10 1991 January 100 1994 January 1000 1997 August 1500 1998 October 2000 1999 December 2500 2000 December 3000 2001 November 4000 2001 October/November 6000 2002 December* 9000 2003 November* 10000 2004 January* The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been created to secure a future for Project Gutenberg into the next millennium. We need your donations more than ever! As of February, 2002, contributions are being solicited from people and organizations in: Alabama, Alaska, Arkansas, Connecticut, Delaware, District of Columbia, Florida, Georgia, Hawaii, Illinois, Indiana, Iowa, Kansas, Kentucky, Louisiana, Maine, Massachusetts, Michigan, Mississippi, Missouri, Montana, Nebraska, Nevada, New Hampshire, New Jersey, New Mexico, New York, North Carolina, Ohio, Oklahoma, Oregon, Pennsylvania, Rhode Island, South Carolina, South Dakota, Tennessee, Texas, Utah, Vermont, Virginia, Washington, West Virginia, Wisconsin, and Wyoming. We have filed in all 50 states now, but these are the only ones that have responded. As the requirements for other states are met, additions to this list will be made and fund raising will begin in the additional states. Please feel free to ask to check the status of your state. In answer to various questions we have received on this: We are constantly working on finishing the paperwork to legally request donations in all 50 states. If your state is not listed and you would like to know if we have added it since the list you have, just ask. While we cannot solicit donations from people in states where we are not yet registered, we know of no prohibition against accepting donations from donors in these states who approach us with an offer to donate. International donations are accepted, but we don't know ANYTHING about how to make them tax-deductible, or even if they CAN be made deductible, and don't have the staff to handle it even if there are ways. Donations by check or money order may be sent to: Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation PMB 113 1739 University Ave. Oxford, MS 38655-4109 Contact us if you want to arrange for a wire transfer or payment method other than by check or money order. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been approved by the US Internal Revenue Service as a 501(c)(3) organization with EIN [Employee Identification Number] 64-622154. Donations are tax-deductible to the maximum extent permitted by law. As fund-raising requirements for other states are met, additions to this list will be made and fund-raising will begin in the additional states. We need your donations more than ever! You can get up to date donation information online at: http://www.gutenberg.net/donation.html *** If you can't reach Project Gutenberg, you can always email directly to: Michael S. Hart [email protected] Prof. Hart will answer or forward your message. We would prefer to send you information by email. **The Legal Small Print** (Three Pages) ***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS**START*** Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers. They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with your copy of this eBook, even if you got it for free from someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how you may distribute copies of this eBook if you want to. *BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS EBOOK By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this eBook by sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person you got it from. If you received this eBook on a physical medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request. ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM EBOOKS This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBooks, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association (the "Project"). Among other things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this eBook under the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark. Please do not use the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark to market any commercial products without permission. To create these eBooks, the Project expends considerable efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain works. Despite these efforts, the Project's eBooks and any medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other eBook medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment. LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below, [1] Michael Hart and the Foundation (and any other party you may receive this eBook from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook) disclaims all liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES. If you discover a Defect in this eBook within 90 days of receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that time to the person you received it from. If you received it on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement copy. If you received it electronically, such person may choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to receive it electronically. THIS EBOOK IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS TO THE EBOOK OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A PARTICULAR PURPOSE. Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you may have other legal rights. INDEMNITY You will indemnify and hold Michael Hart, the Foundation, and its trustees and agents, and any volunteers associated with the production and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm texts harmless, from all liability, cost and expense, including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following that you do or cause: [1] distribution of this eBook, [2] alteration, modification, or addition to the eBook, or [3] any Defect. DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm" You may distribute copies of this eBook electronically, or by disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this "Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg, or: [1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the eBook or this "small print!" statement. You may however, if you wish, distribute this eBook in machine readable binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form, including any form resulting from conversion by word processing or hypertext software, but only so long as *EITHER*: [*] The eBook, when displayed, is clearly readable, and does *not* contain characters other than those intended by the author of the work, although tilde (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may be used to convey punctuation intended by the author, and additional characters may be used to indicate hypertext links; OR [*] The eBook may be readily converted by the reader at no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent form by the program that displays the eBook (as is the case, for instance, with most word processors); OR [*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the eBook in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC or other equivalent proprietary form). [2] Honor the eBook refund and replacement provisions of this "Small Print!" statement. [3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Foundation of 20% of the gross profits you derive calculated using the method you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are payable to "Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation" the 60 days following each date you prepare (or were legally required to prepare) your annual (or equivalent periodic) tax return. Please contact us beforehand to let us know your plans and to work out the details. WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO? Project Gutenberg is dedicated to increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be freely distributed in machine readable form. The Project gratefully accepts contributions of money, time, public domain materials, or royalty free copyright licenses. Money should be paid to the: "Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation." If you are interested in contributing scanning equipment or software or other items, please contact Michael Hart at: [email protected] [Portions of this eBook's header and trailer may be reprinted only when distributed free of all fees. Copyright (C) 2001, 2002 by Michael S. Hart. Project Gutenberg is a TradeMark and may not be used in any sales of Project Gutenberg eBooks or other materials be they hardware or software or any other related product without express permission.] *END THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS*Ver.02/11/02*END*